This old novel should be available at the Lulu store in printed format soon/drf
Five for
One
by Luke
Allan
Published 1934
THE CHARACTERS
NATHAN
HORNBAKER, broker.
JULIA
HORNBAKER, his wife.
CLIFFORD
CRINGAN, “artist,” Julia’s brother.
QUEENIE
CRINGAN, his wife.
SHIRLEY
CRINGAN, their daughter.
ROLAND LYSTER,
alias Halton, alias Simpson, personal secretary to Hornbaker.
REDFERN, a
private detective.
INSPECTOR
STAYNER.
Gangsters:—
THE SKUNK, a
Syrian perfume seller from Tunis .
BALDY.
TONI PENSA,
alias Boitani.
DAGO GEORGE,
alias Sydney.
FRENCHY,
"Marius Rivaud ” at home in Banyuls-sur-Mer.
HUTTON, a
faithful butler.
HANNAH, the
Hornbaker cook.
Women of the
Harem, a negro eunuch, etc.
Chapter I Prospects
PROSPECTS
The ornate
façade of the opera house, record of an earlier taste in architecture, lifted
itself with absurd arrogance above the ferment of the street. From a
street-wall of heterogeneous ugliness it flashed a hundred pinnacles, a hundred
bizarre projections and gaudy dimples that, before its recent restoration, had
been chastened by the kindly hand of Time and a dirty city’s accretions.
During the
past fortnight a score of workmen had swarmed over the capricious front, so that
to-day pedestrians paused to slant a curious glance at it, and motor windows
framed many an appraising face. The opera house had become once more the Opera
House.
In the stream
of pedestrians who stopped before the yawning entrance to exclaim were two men
of unusual appearance. The taller, a broad-shouldered giant, straight as an
arrow but developing a paunch, his large head smothered in a monstrous black
hat, swung a ponderous hand theatrically toward a rising row of posters that
blocked the doorway.
“After all,”
he said, in the throaty voice of one whose voice is his living, “you have to
hand it to Hornbaker. Whatever we think of the complete scheme, he has an idea
now and then. Look at those bills. They do add a new touch. More harmonious,
don't you think, Farruchi?”
His companion,
a small man, almost drowned in a voluminous cape and slightly out of breath
from keeping pace with his long-legged friend, sniffed.
“I don’t. Do
you sing any the better for remembering that the old simple, straight lines of
the posters of the day when music was appreciated, and the public knew where to
get it, have been kicked aside for these sweeping curves and didoes by a
gold-lined autocrat like Hornbaker? Do you, Solokoff?”
Solokoff
chuckled. “It’s the gold lining that makes music profitable to you and me,
Farruchi. Different age, different system.”
Something
about it seemed to touch a raw spot in the little Italian. “Different age!” He
snorted.
"I should
say it is. A different public, dancing to the tune of a man like Hornbaker.”
Solokoff shook
his head. “We just don’t understand energy as a part of art. We’re babies in
the knack of reaching the public. And, after all, the public must be reached or
we go hungry.”
Farruchi was
not listening. “It’s'that damned puppy-dog of his, that Lyster fellow! I see
red when he blathers that Oxford
accent over me. Some day I'll blow up and—”
They passed
along, Farruchi gesticulating violently his companion laughing.
A heavy truck,
held up by the traffic, slid closer to the curb, and a shock of red hair
appeared from beneath the ramshackle cab. The owner pointed.
“I say, Pat, I
ain’t never noticed this place before.”
The man at the
wheel tilted his head toward the gleaming pinnacles. “Ye show yer ign’rance,
Bill. That’s the opery.” He lifted his shoulders. “Me and the missus is goin’
to-night. The missus she’s strong on music. Ye should hear her play the
pianner. Something in music, ye know.”
Bill eyed him
contemptuously. “Sure! Must be!” He pointed to the bills. “There’s fifteen
bucks, I see. So that’s why you’ve cut out the nags—and things. Well, you are a
sap!”
“No fifteen
bucks for me, Bill. I ain’t seen a fiver in two years that wasn’t ear-marked by
the missus. There’s a thousand seats in there at half a buck. Only the big guys
pays the fifteen—so they can see the wigs and dresses on the stage, and smell
the flowers, I guess. That’s one thing old Hornbaker did—he’s got a lot of
cheap seats for guys like you and me. they do say he’ll lose a grand or two
every night. I got to quit early to-night for a bath.”
Bill spat
noisily. “All I see in it is wot you’d win with that buck on the nags at New Orleans or Tee Wanna.
. . . But if I could get my fists on some of the di’muns and jools they’ll be
wearin’ in them fifteen-buck seats!”
The traffic line
started, the truck jerked forward. Three drifters idled along the pavement,
their faces down-turned, but their uneasy eyes shifted from side to side. At
the edge of the sidewalk before the opera house they grouped. The largest of
the three leaned toward his companions, and the corner of his lips moved. Then,
with a quick glance about, they moved along in their soundless way and were
lost in the crowd.
Chapter II Stick 'Em Up
NATHAN
HORNBAKER let his hands drop wearily from his white bow tie and stood for a
moment staring at himself in the mirror. A smile crept slowly over his lips. It
was not so very long, as memory went, since he purchased his first
“swallow-tail,” and a hundred years would fail to dispel the wonder of his
image in full dress, the mark, in those days back on the farm, of a gentleman
of wealth and position.
Brought up at
the verge of the northern woods, the isolation of the farm had left time to
dream—dreams that were still real as ever, not one to be forgotten or even
dimmed. Some of the dreams had come true, but their coming had served only to
emphasize the tardiness of others. One other result—the order of their
importance had altered. Materially he had outrun his wildest dreams, and now
that he had it wealth was so immaterial.
Memory still
ranging the years, he touched the white bow to greater symmetry and shrugged
his shoulders to sense the comfortable cling of his coat. Wealth? Was it
material to happiness? In his own mind all his happiness had come from other
sources. A slight frown appeared for an instant on his forehead, and he shook
his head irritably against the vagrant thoughts that had induced it. Why, for
instance, didn’t someone invent an evening shirt that did not bulge at the
sides? Why couldn’t his barber effect discipline in his unruly hair? He hated
it short like that. So did Julia, but—
Dimly from
somewhere in the rear downstairs came the tinkle of a bell, and unconsciously
he started for the hall. This would be Clifford, Julia’s brother, and his
family. Julia had asked them to a family dinner, from which they would go
directly to the opera.
Hornbaker had
reached the top of the stairs as Hutton, the butler, hurried through the lower
hall. Unconsciously he waited, leaning his elbows on the railing. Julia
appeared from the living-room—Julia in a new dress of hydrangea blue, a
necklace of graduated diamonds sparkling against the white of her neck.
Hornbaker forgot everything else. How beautiful she was! How exquisite in every
line and movement! Except for those diamonds! In the surge of his first
“killing” on the market he had grabbed them at an expensive jeweller’s and
hurried them to her, striving to satisfy a craving—reward to a faithful, loving
wife, as he rewarded everyone to whom he felt an obligation.
He shuddered,
and one of his hands crept to a vest pocket to fondle a tissue-paper parcel.
Only in a vague way did the scene in the hall below, apart from his wife,
register in his mind.
Shirley
Cringan, a beautiful girl of nineteen, entered first, the light reflected in soft
waves from her freshly-dressed hair. In her hurry she almost collided with the
staid Hutton, who grinned lovingly as she reached up to pat his cheek in
passing. She threw her arms about Julia’s neck, all the time chattering
excitedly.
Queenie, her
mother, was next, even more twittery than Shirley, her pretty face awreath with
excitement. Everyone called Queenie Cringan “pretty.” She failed to notice
Hutton, who stood waiting for their wraps.
Clifford
Cringan brought up the rear—Clifford ponderous, solemn, “arty.” He was more
solemn than ever to-night or was it in contrast to wife and daughter?—more
erect, more ponderous, looking his best in evening dress, though he insisted on
a flowing black tie and huge black studs. “Art,” in Clifford Cringan’s creed, was
indistinguishable from art.
The group
remained for a time talking in the hall, Queenie and Shirley chattering at the
same time, while Clifford stood apart in his superior way. Hornbaker was
unconscious of anyone but Julia. How alike were aunt and niece, though
outwardly Julia was all sweet dignity, Shirley reckless youth! But beneath the
girl’s wild pursuit of excitement was, her uncle knew, a stratum of the same
solid worth that made Julia what she was.
As the four in
the lower hall turned toward the living-room, Julia glanced up the stairs. But
her husband had already retired to the bedroom, the fingers of one hand still
touching the package in his pocket. He would wait until they were settled.
He dropped
into a chair and leaned his head on his hands. Through the woof of pleasant
thoughts ran a warp of anxiety. To-night was opening night at the opera, the
opera he was backing, backing with money, yes, but much more with hope. At the
best the season would cost him a small fortune, but nothing mattered except
that his faith in public taste should be justified. Did the public want real
music, or had taste died with reading, and evenings at home, and modesty, and
discipline, and respect for one’s elders, and business honesty? He did not
think so—and he had had few important failures in his diagnoses of events.
His is mind
wandered—it returned to the scene in the hall below. To his surprise, and
somewhat to his consternation, he found he remembered every word they said.
Shirley had spoken first:
"Oh,
auntie, isn’t it wonderful?”
Julia had
smiled and agreed that it appeared that way whatever it was.
"We’re
going on a trip around the world!”
Julia’s smile
had vanished, leaving her face still and cold. Slowly she had turned her
searching eyes to Clifford, but her brother was intent on his flowing black tie
before the hall mirror—oddly intent.
He must have
felt her gaze, for he blustered an explanation:
"A stroke
of luck—on the market.”
Julia had
asked with telling calmness: “Short or long?" For Julia knew the market as
her brother could never hope to know it; her husband had often marvelled at, as
he was willing to profit from, her prescience.
"Urn—uh—now
you’re asking,” Clifford replied, with clumsy mystery. “An amateur now and then
strikes gold.”
"There
are many ways of striking gold,” Julia retorted. And Hornbaker knew she was not
deceived as to the source of the gold Clifford had struck. After all, helping
Clifford was, in a way, something he could do for Julia.
Clifford, too,
must have known his sister knew, for he continued to bluster: “My great
opportunity. Stimulus—the urge of new schemes—colour—atmosphere—something at
last to direct my brush—perhaps a new technique, who knows?”
“And the
broadening influence of travel,” Julia added dryly.
Hornbaker rose
and, taking another glance at himself in the mirror, started down the winding
stairs. As he went he threw his shoulders back. Those gracefully curving stairs
had fed another ambition, fulfilled another youthful dream. Once, as a lad, he
had seen such a stairway pictured and had thrilled to its imposing immensity.
Rounding the
last curve, he was able to look through the open door of the living-room, and
his eyes alighted on the pair of black glass seals supporting glass balls on
their uplifted noses that adorned either end of the carved stone mantel. Those
seals, too, had ended a vague quest. The moment he had seen them in the window
of a speciality shop he had ordered the chauffeur to stop and, paying a
fantastic price, had tenderly brought them home. Only then did he realize that
another dream was responsible. The seals recalled, in a dim way, the pair of
celery glasses that had stood on the oak sideboard on the farm, each gaping
mouth filled with a coloured glass ball.
With the
passing years he found himself missing so much that had been neglected or
scarcely noticed on the farm. It accounted for the purchase of the estate where
he had built his house, twenty miles from his office. Twenty miles—tedious
drive each morning, but at night the road to Paradise .
The fingers of
his right hand still lingered in his vest pocket, and the smile so often
misunderstood by his enemies and loved by his friends twisted his hard-bitten
face. At his entrance the group in the living room looked up.
"I'm
sorry,” he murmured. For a moment he thought of excusing himself by delay at
the office, but it would not be the truth. “I hope, my dear,” to Julia,
"the duck won’t be ruined. Hello, Queenie! Looking your best—as usual. I
hope you’ll enjoy The Barber of Seville
to-night, Clifford. Shirley, I don't see why you don’t wear more of
that—apricot.”
A glow
suffused him as he realized that, after a moment's panic, he had named the
colour correctly.
"It’s for
your sake, Uncle Nathan,” Shirley replied. “The Cringans have to live up to the
patron of the opera to-night.” She kissed him, as she always did when they met.
“The women in your box daren’t be outshone. We’ll place Aunt Julia in front to
dazzle them. Just the same,” touching her aunt’s cheek lovingly, “it’s a shame
to blind them to her other beauties by that blaze.”
Hornbaker
winced. “Where’s Lyster?” he asked.
“Probably
pressing the suit you just took off,” the girl said, making a wry face, “or—”
"If you
had as important a job as Lyster, my girl,” her uncle broke in. He eyed her so
intently that she turned away. “As a matter of fact, I suppose I am to
blame—but in a quite different way.”
“I called to
him as I came down,” Julia said. “He had just started to dress.”
Hornbaker
heard the slight note of rebuke in his wife’s voice. “I didn’t intend he should
finish that work to-night—”
The curtains
parted and a young man entered the room. Hornbaker broke off what he was about
to say and turned to the doorway. If only he could wear evening dress as did
Lyster! The young man looked so much at home; his shirts never seemed to bulge,
his collars to scratch, his hands to be in the way. Queenie Cringan rushed
forward.
“Oh, Mr.
Lyster, we must have a long talk, a long, long talk. We want to know all about Europe . We’re going on a trip, around the world most
likely.”
Lyster smiled
ever so little. “I’m afraid I’m not the traveller you think me. Apart from a
few early years in India ,
I’ve seen only Italy , France , and Switzerland ,
with a flying trip to Berlin .
I—”
“But you can
tell us so much—so much we ought to know—to save time.”
“—and money,”
Shirley put in. “There’s a fairy somewhere for the Cringans, but there must be
a limit. Don’t you think we’d better wait, mumsie? You might call on Mr. Lyster
at his office—with uncle’s consent. Or he might come along as courier—if the
fairy’s good for that expense too. In fact, being courier to new-rich, like the
Cringans, might be a profitable profession for a young man. Of course, it would
be a real profession—and hard work.”
Lyster’s face
flushed, and his lips parted as if to speak, but he said nothing.
Hornbaker
said: “I find him too useful to lend him for any such purpose, Shirley,” and
the subject dropped. But something of the atmosphere the girl’s words had
created remained.
Roland Lyster
showed it most, and that in itself made it the more apparent, for Lyster, until
Shirley spoke, had looked the cool, composed, self-reliant young man Nathan
Hornbaker—and everyone else but Shirley Cringan—knew him. With the long, lean,
unemotional face of the travelled, educated Englishman, he conveyed an
impression of restrained capacity, of unruffled poise in emergency, a man who
had proved himself under trying conditions.
Born in India , his father an officer in the Indian Army,
he had been carried off to England
by his mother “to be educated.” But the boy soon discovered that his education,
so far as it concerned his mother, ceased with his disposal in a Public School;
it was one of the first things he learned. Thereafter his mother, far from
being a guardian, became a care. The discovery had developed a cynicism
difficult to conceal. In no slight degree it left its lines in his face.
Misfortune had
pursued him. During his final year at Oxford
his father had retired from the Service and, driven by his pleasure-loving
wife, had pledged his pension to the limit and promptly lost it. Everything,
including the market, had turned against him.
And so the
son, emerging with a blank future but only the more determined, had struck out
for himself. Within a week he was on his way to the United
States with a small heritage left by a grandmother, and
after a year’s business training in the new land, during which he discarded
most of what he had acquired at Oxford
except diction, had presented himself at the office of the big broker, Nathan
Hornbaker.
Nathan
Hornbaker had received him, as he received everyone but pretenders, affably,
curiously, analytically. Human nature was a study to him.
Perhaps it was
the “accent” did it. Certainly the cultured, restrained intonation had touched
a receptive chord in the hungry man, had woven subtly into the dreams that
lingered from his youth back on the farm. In a few casual-sounding questions he
had drawn aside the veil Lyster had dropped in the last year over his wide
culture, his quick mind, his interest in art and music.
And the big
broker, though he had a fairly suitable secretary, had found a place for the
transplanted Englishman much more intimate than an office secretary, for in
some way Lyster seemed to show the way to the fulfilment of dreams infinitely
more important than those that had come to fruition through his own efforts.
The new assistant was an authority on subjects Hornbaker had no time to master,
and in his new employee he saw a windbreak against the cavillings and
selfishness of adepts in the arts he revered but did not understand.
“You needn’t
have worked late to-night, Lyster,” he said.
Lyster’s
reply, his apology, was to Julia: “ I hope I’m not late. I’m afraid I lost
track of time.” The blame was solely his own.
Julia smiled
on him affectionately. “We’re short-staffed to-night, and I’m worrying for fear
we’ll be late anyway. Since we were going to be out all the evening we let all
but Hannah and Hutton go for the night.” She looked at a minute watch set in a
ring. “If we get away by eight we’re all right.”
“The last
minute grand entry,” Shirley laughed.
"With
Aunt Julia’s diamonds and dad’s tie to lead the way we’ll—”
"Shirley!”
her mother chided, while Clifford Cringan tried to look only contemptuous and
superior.
Shirley
grinned. “If only I weren’t too big to spank!”
"The man
who invented evening dress, so-called—” her father began.
"Was
thinking only of Mr. Lyster,” Shirley said. But she said it too low for that
young man to hear; he had been button-holed by Queenie and led away to a chatter
of questions about Europe .
Shirley and
her father joined them, and Hornbaker, with an inviting glance at Julia,
disappeared behind a bank of ferns in the window. There, in the curving
window-seat, he drew her down beside him. The voices of the others reached them
distantly.
"You
think I work Lyster too hard?” he questioned, a little hurt.
She nestled
back against his shoulder and reached up to pat his cheek. “Work is good for
youth—and he likes it. My one worry is that Hannah may be tardy with dinner. And,”
she laughed, “the Hornbakers are part of the show to-night.” Unconsciously her
hand went up to the diamond necklace.
Nathan
Hornbaker shifted uneasily. “Does it—hurt dear? Those sharp points—”
"Not a
bit. Anyway, it’s a small price to pay for such magnificence.” She looked down
at her ring-laden hands. “I never wore so much jewellery before. But then,
there never was a night like this.”
Her husband
was not deceived. He knew, had known it from the first, that Julia was not
happy about that necklace. He had bought it in the days when his gropings were
more clumsy than to-day, time had revalued the necklace in his mind.
“Let me,
dear.” He unfastened the safety clasp and gathering the necklace in his hand,
slid it into a vest pocket.
She turned to
him, wondering. Something crackled in another vest pocket, and he firmly turned
her face away, while his awkward hands fumbled at the back of her neck and
something exquisitely cold dropped on her chest.
“There!”
She opened a
dainty blue and white enamelled compact and stared into the little mirror.
“Oh, Nathan!”
A gleam of
molten gold, of xanthic fire, nestled into the V of her evening gown. She
gasped. Hornbaker stared at his finger-nails.
“For—me,
Nathan?”
He chuckled.
“I’m just trying it out for the other woman."
“But
where—where did you get it?”
“London . The same old
place.”
“Then you've
carried it all these months!” The eyes she turned on him were wet with tears.
What a son he would have had, if Luck had been kind!
No, I’m no
hoarder. I bought it from a photograph. It came only last week. That place has
never let me down. I don’t think it did this time, do you?"
For answer she
caught his face in her hands and kissed him on the lips, a demonstration that
made him flush and tingle. Julia was always so quiet in her affections.
Hutton
appeared in the doorway and announced dinner.
As the others
stepped aside to make way for Julia, the fire of the new jewel seemed to fill
the room with a lambent flame. Shirley darted forward.
“Oh—oh, Aunt
Julia!” She turned the stone tenderly to the light. “A canary diamond!”
“They describe
it as more than a century old,” Hornbaker said modestly, but his veins had not
ceased to tingle. “Eh, Lyster?”
“It’s
exquisite.” Lyster leaned nearer. “I should say the cutting is perfect, and
shape and colour. The Roman chain, at least, is ancient. But the sparkle—no,
the glow!” He swung his head about, as if observing an emanation. “Like a
gossamer veil over molten gold—the stored fire of a million years of darkness,
the treasured brilliance of a century of light. It—”
“Bought with a
rich man’s thousands,” Cringan murmured coldly, fingering his flowing tie and
not even looking at the jewel.
“As for me,”
Queenie broke in quickly, “give me the other necklace. One could at least pawn
it in bits. Only another Nathan Hornbaker could take a stone like this off my
hands when I had to sell.” She giggled.
The awkward
silence that followed was broken by Lyster:
“The things
one wants must be paid for. My mother had an amethyst no larger than you see in
the five-and-tens at fifty cents, yet it was—well, worth half a year at Oxford . That little word
colour!”
“Your mother
did that?” Hornbaker had managed to piece together a fair picture of Lyster’s
mother. “She sold it to send you to college?”
"She sold
it,” Lyster said, and stepped back.
They were in
the dining-room. Soft light from half a dozen candles in Sheffield-plate
candlesticks and several wooden sconces accentuated the gleam of silver and
white napery. A great silver bowl, in which floated white water-lilies, centred
the mahogany table. Shirley drew an audible breath of delight, and Hornbaker,
hearing it, smiled lovingly on his’ wife, and his eye caught once more the glow
of the canary diamond.
He had never
felt so contented.
Hutton moved
inconspicuously about the table. He was a short, thick-set man, with stooping
but broad shoulders and surprisingly slender hands. He had been with the
Hornbakers since the house was built, engaged by Nathan as a new conception of
his obligations to his wife. Julia had not thought of a butler, for her tastes
were simple, had not, indeed, wished one, and her husband’s inability to
explain introduced for several months a strange and uncomfortable embarrassment
concerning discussions of staff.
In that time
Hutton had justified himself, a source of never-ending satisfaction to his
employer.
As the butler
passed behind Shirley’s chair she lifted her face to him and smiled, and
Hutton’s round cheeks flushed with pleasure. He always felt that he had much to
do with the girl’s upbringing, though it had consisted of little more than
devotion and defence in her many escapades.
Cringan was
discussing the coming season of opera:
“It’s a big
risk, Nathan. It’s not even that: it’s certain loss—a tremendous hand-out
before it’s over.” He shook his leonine head, so that a lock of hair fell over
one eye. “The world has got away from opera. It’s got away from real art of any
kind. All it thinks of is automatic control, liquor legislation, and the day’s
markets, and that—”
“It’s the
market got us this trip, Clifford,” Queenie reminded him.
Her husband
coughed and started a new sentence:
“Any attempt
to bring the world back to culture, to—to spirituality in these days should be
tackled only after much consideration. It’s so easy to waste good money on
misdirected effort.”
“Then you
think opera—music—misdirected effort,” Hornbaker remarked idly. Clifford’s
opinions counted little with his friends.
“The money
might be spent more—judiciously.”
Hornbaker
smiled. “As Lyster says, the things one wants must be paid for.”
“Mr. Lyster,”
said Shirley, her eyes on her plate, “is a whole library of aphorisms and
quotations.”
Hornbaker
glanced at Lyster, expecting a retort, but none came. Somewhat irritated by the
young man’s silence under Shirley’s goading, he said: “A good memory, if one
has read, saves a lot of talk, Shirley.”
Lyster found
his tongue. “Perhaps I should credit my quotations for Miss Cringan’s
benefit—or put them in quotation marks.”
Shirley shot
him an angry glance, but before she could reply her father was away again:
“Fifty
thousand—that’s what it’s likely to cost you—fifty thousand that might be
expended on more permanent results. To-night a lot of expensive artists open
their throats—and to-morrow the public has forgotten. Don’t misunderstand me,
Nathan—”
“We don’t,
Clifford,” Julia broke in dryly. “Help yourself to the olives, or shall I call
Hutton?”
She turned to
Lyster and the two commenced to talk. Hornbaker dimly heard his brother-in-law
elaborate his pet theme. Art was painting, always painting, and nothing
else—pictures, as he said, that would always be in sight, impossible to forget
like the best of singing. Hornbaker was thinking more of his wife and Lyster.
They had so
much in common, those two. Nothing so justified his precipitancy in engaging
the young man, nothing so endeared Lyster to him. Endlessly Julia and Lyster
could talk, touching with light grace but deep intelligence subjects on which
Hornbaker knew himself so ignorant. Endlessly he was content to listen, basking
in cleverly turned phrases and glints of unexpected insight. He did not realize
that his very appreciation ranked him higher than his own estimate of himself.
Clifford
ranted on. Queenie and Shirley broke into spasms of discussion centring on the
contemplated trip, but for the most part the girl was silent. Hutton entered
with the dessert, a half melon rounded out with pistachio ice, and departed.
“Utilize the
same money in encouraging art that lasts,” Clifford declaimed, “and watch the
results.”
“I try it now
and then,” Hornbaker replied, with the first note of sharpness. He had tried it
so often with Clifford that he was losing hope, and that meant losing faith in
himself.
Julia looked
at her watch. “We must hurry. Shall we have the coffee here?” She pressed the
electric button with her toe.
For several
moments there was no response, then an inexplicable flurry of noise from the
butler’s pantry, and the door flew open, banging against the rubber stop. They
all looked up, Julia turning protestingly in her chair. Four strange men poured
into the room. They were masked. They carried guns.
“Stick ’em
up!” ordered one, “and make it snappy!”
Chapter III The Murder
For a moment
or two the group about the table sat transfixed. Hornbaker moved first. With
flashing eyes he rose, sweeping the chair back with his knees.
“What does
this mean?”
The one who
had spoken, smallest of the four, wearing a red mask, came round the table, gun
levelled. “Whadyu think? You got brains. Use ’em. We mean business.”
Hornbaker’s
fury was at fever heat, but, though he did not look at her, he felt Julia’s
eyes pleading with him, and slowly he sat down.
“What do you
want?”
“Put your
hands on the table, all of you, and keep ’em there.”
Queenie
Cringan only partly stifled a scream, and Lyster, seizing her hand, drew it up
on the table with his own.
“That’s
better. Th’ ain’t no use kickin’. We got the staff tied, and four more pals out
there. Now empty yer pockets, and no monkey-work.”
Clifford
Cringan set about obeying with such haste that he could scarcely find his
pockets. His usually ruddy face was white and scared. His nervous fussiness
drew the attention of the four robbers as he produced two handkerchiefs, a
solitary dollar bill, a few pieces of small silver, a quill toothpick, half a
dozen business cards of unrecognizable origin, and a small silver cigarette
case. A dusky-skinned robber ran expert hands over Cringan’s body, and added to
the pile a tiny lucky elephant in rose quartz. Cringan breathed heavily; he
looked ready to cry.
“You
don’t—want that,” he whined.
The robber
examined it curiously through the holes in his mask.
“Bah! ” he
snarled, and hurled it with all his might on the nearest plate, where it
shattered itself and the plate.
Shirley’s eyes
flashed. “You’re a brute, as well as a burglar!” she cried out.
“Oh, I am, am
I?” The robber started round the table toward her, but one of his companions, a
man with an odd fringe of grey hair protruding round his cap, blocked the way.
“Aw, get along
with the job,” he growled.
The gang
spread about the table. The one with the grey fringe passed behind Julia’s
chair toward Lyster. As he rounded the corner he wheeled abruptly, and his head
went forward. The flash of the canary diamond had caught his eye. With a
whistling breath he bent over Julia, covering the gem with one large hand,
while with the other he released the snap at the back of her neck. The diamond
cupped in his hand, he stepped away, his back to the table, and beneath one of
the sconces stared down on it. Then his hand disappeared in his pocket. But
when he turned back to the table a new light was in his eyes.
His comrades
paid little attention. The one in the red mask stood over Hornbaker, and
another had passed on to Queenie. The fourth, a big, bull-necked man, who had
thus far kept in the background, moved silently around Julia. He seemed to be
taking little interest in the affair. But suddenly he sprang forward to clutch
Lyster’s arms in his powerful hands.
“No, you
don’t.” For one of Lyster’s hands had crept dangerously close to a heavy
candlestick.
Lyster, taken
by surprise, did not struggle. His arms were jerked behind him and tied, and
his assailant lifted him to his feet, dragged him to the wall, and there bound
him to a heavy chair.
Shirley looked
on, at first with surprise, then with curling lip. “There are two glass seals
in the other room,” she sneered. “Look out for them too.”
The nearest
robber glared down on her.
“You dames,
yer all the same,” he growled. “That guy’s the only dangerous thing in this
house—and he’s damned lucky he wasn’t drilled.” He strode to where Lyster was
bound helplessly and, jerking a handkerchief from the young man’s pocket, bound
it over his eyes. “You seen them eyes, my gal. Well, we ain’t takin’ no
chances—Smarty.”
The larger
robber who had leaped on Lyster had withdrawn, but his eyes missed nothing. One
of his mates unfastened from Queenie’s neck a string of pearls and tossed it on
the table.
“Woolworth’s!”
he snorted. “And they done you then.”
The red mask
had returned to Hornbaker’s side. As he felt at the latter’s pockets Hornbaker
made an angry move, only to be prodded to submission by the gun.
“A move from
you and it’s all over. Put them hands on the table.”
Hornbaker
obeyed slowly, his fists clenching and unclenching, his face almost purple with
restrained fury. Julia pleaded with him:
“What does it
matter, Nathan? Let them finish and go.”
Cringan
whined: “Yes, yes. They’ll shoot us all. Let them have all they want.”
“Yer right.
Some sense in that.”
The robber
lifted his gun and fired, and a beautiful cloisonne vase dropped from the
mantel to the floor. Queenie screamed and pressed her hands to her eyes.
Shirley glared
her contempt. “So spectacular, so brave—but such a waste of powder.”
The robber
took a furious step toward her, but as Hornbaker made a move to rise he turned
back with pointing gun. In a moment his prying hands found the diamond
necklace. A single glance, and he tried to hide it negligently in his pocket,
but in four strides his larger companion, who held himself so retired but so intent,
swept round the table, jerked the necklace from his hand, and held it aloft
with a delighted chuckle.
“That isn’t of
any value to you,” Hornbaker warned. “You can’t sell it. The larger stones are
photographed and on record. No one would dare buy them. Besides, they’re
insured, and they’ll be advertised immediately.”
“Zat so?”
jeered the one in the red mask.
“But,”
Hornbaker offered, “if you want them, with no danger to yourselves, give back
the stone my wife was wearing.”
The jeer was
repeated, more loudly than before, and the small robber in the red mask stepped
to the wall and switched on the centre chandelier. For several moments the pair
stood appraising the stones. An amethyst necklace was taken from Shirley’s neck
and two rings from her mother, while the large robber went through Lyster’s
pockets. Having cleaned them out, he turned and nodded peremptorily toward the
hall. The one in the red mask tapped Hornbaker on the shoulder with his gun.
“Now, you,
we’ll go upstairs.”
Hornbaker
looked at the French clock on the mantel. "I'll make it worth your while
to go now. I must be in the city in an hour or so.”
“Oh, yeah?
Don’t we know it? By God, I wish we could lay our hands on the women that’ll be
loaded with sparklers at that opera to-night. Now, trot,” as the silent leader
made an impatient movement of his head.
A look from
Julia started Hornbaker for the hall, the red mask ahead, the big leader
bringing up the rear. One of the pair left on guard in the dining-room helped
himself to a cigar from a silver box and seated himself at the end of the room.
The one with the fringe of grey hair leaned dreamily against the wall, finger
and thumb caught in the pocket where he had dropped the canary diamond.
In fifteen
minutes the three who had gone upstairs returned. Lyster was released from the
chair, his arms still bound, and the whole group started toward the kitchen.
"We’ve
just begun,” the one in the red mask, who did most of the talking, announced.
“We’re goin’ downstairs.”
Nathan and
Julia exchanged a quick glance. The robber must have seen it, for he laughed.
“Sure thing.
We know you rich guys. There’s a vault or somethin’ somewheres down there.”
Hornbaker
pleaded that they take him and leave the others where they were, but a painful
poke with the end of a gun closed his lips.
“You git
talky,” threatened the red mask, “and it’ll just cost a bullet.”
Julia, head
high, started for the kitchen. The lights were all on in pantry and kitchen,
and in the latter room they found Hannah, the cook, and Hutton bound and
guarded by another of the gang. At sight of them Hannah broke into wailing
protest, but Hutton hung his head.
The man in the
red mask led down the basement steps, turned to the right and passed through
two or three thick brick arches. As he went he switched on the lights.
Hornbaker was
thinking. With the first spasm of fury spent, he realized that an injudicious
move might result in tragedy for them all. After all, what did a few thousands
mean to him? There was, of course, the canary diamond, and his heart sank as he
thought of it. But if they came through the adventure unscathed. There was the
vault, too; but even that—
He knew the
vault would be found, and in a few seconds they stood before the great steel
door at the darkest corner of the basement, the light gleaming from its
chromium-plated lock. He was thrust forward.
“Open it, damn
you!”
Hornbaker
hesitated. Every instinct was for delay, but it could avail nothing.
“My small
stock of wines can't be worth all this,” he protested. “You can't carry much of
it away, and you’ve a thousand times its value already.”
The big leader
caught his shoulder and flung him at the vault, and Hornbaker set to work. As
the heavy door swung open the leader flashed a pocket light into the black hole
and entered. The one in the red mask crowded close behind.
The leader
wheeled on him. “Get out!” he snarled.
“Oh, yeah?”
The other held his ground.
They glared at
each other through their masks, then, with a laugh and a fling of his great
hand, the leader went into the vault. He did not go alone.
The group
outside heard them moving about—rattle of bottles and papers and boxes.
Presently they emerged, each bearing a heavy sack.
“Some vault!”
exulted the one in the red mask.
Shirley made a
contemptuous sound with her lips. “Some job! Five of you—with a whole battery
of guns—and you’re all so frightened you’d run if anyone said 'boo!’”
The red mask
pushed into her face. “You say ‘boo,’ miss, just try it.” His gun covered her
heart.
Shirley did
not flinch, but she only smiled and lifted her hands with a scornful gesture.
In the
movement the light caught the facet of a ring she had managed to conceal by
clenching her fists. The robber grabbed it and, with a wrench, tore it off.
Shirley uttered a cry and a trickle of blood ran down her fingers over her
palm.
With a bellow
of rage Hutton, bound as he was, flung himself headlong at the robber and sent
him hurtling against the brick wall. The latter turned as he lay and fired, and
Hutton, without a murmur, crumpled to the floor and lay still.
Hornbaker took
a quick step forward, but the gun was turned on him. Julia stepped between.
But the robber
with the fringe of grey hair intercepted her. “Cut that out, you fool!” he
hurled at his threatening companion. He held his own gun ready. “You’re just a
damned brute, like the girl said!” He bent over the dead butler. “You sure done
it this time.”
The brute’s
spirit had died, the bravado that had made him the most hateful and dangerous
of the five. “You seen what he done,” he snarled.
“And you earned
it.” The other turned his back.
“Hurt you
much, miss?”
But Shirley
was on her knees beside the dead butler. “Hutton, Hutton, you aren’t—” She read
the tragedy in the white face and twisted body, and with a low sob she covered
her face with her hands.
The burly
leader stepped forward and lifted her to her feet.
“Get in
there,” he ordered, “all of you,” pointing to the vault.
Hornbaker’s
eyes widened. “You can’t—do that.”
The red-masked
bully pushed up to him, eager to reinstate himself.
“We can’t, eh?
Well, we’re doin’ just that.” He charged into Hornbaker, knocking him into the
vault. The others were herded after him.
“But you can’t
leave us in here,” Hornbaker protested. “We’ll smother!”
“Aw, shut up!
We’ll telephone the police.”
The door
clanged shut on an awful darkness, the bolts rattled into their sockets.
Chapter IV PANIC
It was dark in
the vault, dark with the horrible dank earthiness of the grave. For several
breaths they stood still, seven panic-stricken human beings pressed against one
another. Suddenly someone stirred. Clifford Cringan screamed.
“I’m
smothering! I’m smothering!” He fought toward the door, clawing at his throat.
“Clifford!”
Julia’s stern voice rang through the darkness, and Clifford, always afraid of
his sister, subsided.
Hannah’s voice
broke out in a low, quavering mumble: “My God! Oh, my God! Oh, my God!” It was
terrifying.
“Do you
believe in Him?” Hornbaker asked. “Then don’t be a whiner.”
Shirley
cleared her throat composedly. “Now we've got rid of them, let’s all be
comfortable. Mr. Lyster can’t play the hero with his hands tied.”
Her uncle felt
his way toward Lyster. “Sometimes I wish I was your father, Shirley.”
“My
apologies,” she said, with a short laugh. “Perhaps he wasn’t a hero, after
all.” Abruptly her manner changed. “Poor Hutton!”
“And he died
for you,” Hornbaker reminded her. “You infuriated them with your—”
She cut him
short with a cry of horror. “Oh—Uncle—Nathan!” A sob was stifled in her throat.
“I'm sorry,
Shirley,” Hornbaker apologized. “We must keep our sense of proportion—now,
particularly.”
Julia touched
his arm. “Don't worry, Nathan. The police will know in time.”
Cringan
wailed: “They won’t tell them—they won't tell them! They daren't! We’ll all be
smothered to death in a few minutes!”
“We will,
daddy, if you keep on breathing so hard,” Shirley said. “You're using more than
your share. I can hear you—I can't hear much else. What did they take away in
the sacks, uncle?”
“The family
plate, I suppose. The gold plate we haven't had much chance to use. . . . And a
bit of loot I kept there.”
Only Julia,
besides himself, was aware that the “loot” was some fifty thousand dollars in
gold and banknotes Hornbaker kept on hand to facilitate market deals that must
be concealed temporarily from the public to prevent a stampede.
“Oh, my God!
Oh, my God! ” Hannah breathed.
“It's easy
enough for you small people,” Cringan moaned.
“Let's have
two heroes in the caste,” Shirley suggested. “Try what it feels like, daddy.
And couldn't we have less jostling?”
“I’m afraid,”
Lyster apologized, “that I can’t get to the door without it.”
“Some of us
are trying to be content where we are,” Shirley said scornfully.
A blubbering
scream from her father sent a shudder through them all. “Where we are! Where we
are! Where we’ll soon be dead! I can’t stand it! I can’t stand it! Why did you
have a place like this, Nathan. We’ll all be dead in a few minutes. It’ll be
murder, and on your head.”
Before anyone
could speak Hannah uttered a piercing shriek. It was cut short to a choking
gurgle.
“My God, what’s
that?” Cringan quavered.
“Just a touch
of what you’ll experience yourself, Clifford,” Hornbaker replied grimly, “if
you aren’t still. Hannah, do you want to be choked to death right now, or would
you rather live to get out with us? Because we’re going to get out. Stop that
pushing!” he thundered. “The quieter we are the longer the air will last.
Lyster, Lyster, where are you?”
Lyster replied
from near the door: “I’m here. I’m examining the lock.” The calmness of his
tone soothed them.
“But you can’t
get at it. The inner door— But, no, they didn’t close that. It hasn’t been
closed for a year; it’s warped. What have you found, Lyster?”
“Perhaps a
mite of fresh air through the keyhole,” Shirley suggested scornfully.
“Stop it!” It
was the first time anyone had ever spoken to her like that, and the girl was
too surprised to make a retort.
Julia broke
the space of silence that followed: “We make every allowance for nerves,
Shirley, but if you and your father would learn a lesson from your mother we’d
all be more comfortable.”
“I'm sorry,
auntie,” Shirley breathed. “That wasn’t—exactly—what I had in mind.”
“Do you
remember how this lock was covered from the inside, Mr. Hornbaker? ” Lyster
asked.
“I’ve never
even noticed it.”
A deep,
breathless silence dropped over them, broken only by the sound of Lyster’s hand
feeling over the steel door.
“I think I
know now,” he murmured.
They heard the
rattle of metal on metal, scraping, clicking, and for a time no one spoke.
Clifford
Cringan could stand it no longer. “It’s no use, I tell you!” he screamed. “In
another minute we’ll be dead! It’s stifling—I’m choking—I—Let me go! Stop it!”
“I stop,”
Hornbaker replied grimly, “when you do—or when there’s one less exhausting the
air in this place. If we’re to smother, you go first.”
The click of a
small piece of metal striking the cement floor drove them to silence, and
Hornbaker leaned dizzily against the shelves that lined the sides.
Another click.
“The second
screw!” Lyster announced, in a matter-of-fact tone.
They listened
breathlessly as the work proceeded. Lyster commenced to talk, a running
comment, broken by the panting of his efforts:
“If only I
could see! . . . No, don’t strike a match; we need all the oxygen. . . . The
lock—it’s in good condition—that’s the chromium—it never rusts—or stainless
steel—have to be something like that in a place like this.” Another tinkle of
falling metal, and Lyster laughed. “Number three. . . . Three more, I should
say, . . . Never found money so useful . . . especially small silver. This dime
is worth a million. . . . Found it in a corner of a pocket.. . . Always thought
it one of my bad habits to keep a piece in every pocket, . . . Even bad habits
have their virtues. . . . And that, so far as I know, is an aphorism that isn’t
a quotation.”
An audible
breath came from Shirley Cringan, but she said nothing.
“This little
dime makes a satisfactory screwdriver—for these special screws. . . . I suppose
those fellows, when they went through me, thought a dime beneath their notice.
. . . Strange how casual these impressive locks are on the inside—where they
can’t be seen. . . . Mass production again. . . . I’m all in favour of it
hereafter.”
They
listened—listened to his rambling comment as much as for the fall of the screws
as they were released. Only Hannah whimpered now and then, choking off the
sound with her own hand. Once the wail got away from her.
“I’m all
right, Mr. Hornbaker,” she whispered. “Don’t you worry about me. I’m just
praying—like you said.”
Hornbaker
patted her shoulder. “You’re a brick, Hannah.”
Another tinkle
. . . another. . . . A louder grating of heavy metal, and then a crash. Lyster
drew a sharp breath of pain.
“It got away
from me,” he laughed, “and fell on my foot. Oh, well!”
A ray of light
appeared—the door swung open.
Lyster
flattened himself against the wall and let them precede. As Hornbaker passed,
he touched his secretary on the arm.
"I'll
frame that dime,” he said with a short laugh.
"If you
don't mind, Mr. Hornbaker,” Lyster returned firmly, “I'll keep it as a memento
of the one time I was ever called a hero.”
Chapter V Aplomb
Hutton lay
where he had fallen. Death had been instantaneous. With bent heads, the whole
night’s events still little more than an ugly dream, they stood about the body.
Tears streamed down Shirley Cringan’s cheeks, but she made no sound. Nathan
Hornbaker’s face was set.
Suddenly he
lifted his clenched fists. “Before God, I’ll get them, to the last man!” His
teeth closed with an audible click.
Julia crept to
his side, a little frightened, and gently pressed his arm. “He died as he would
wish to die, Nathan—for us.”
“And for him,
Julia, I’ll spend my last cent to run down his murderers. I swear it. I’ll
clear the world of brutes like that. At last my money will buy something I
want.”
He wheeled and
led through the basement to the stairs. In the kitchen above he pulled up
abruptly and bent over the floor.
“What’s this?”
A line of fresh bloodstains led to right and left. “Were any of you hurt up
here?” he demanded of Hannah.
“No, sir. They
done everything but that. Hutton, he put up a bit of a fight out on the step,
but they roped him up. He didn’t bleed, though.”
Hornbaker
pointed toward the front of the house.
“The women
will go in there—to the living-room. Lyster and I will be busy here for a
time.”
Lyster already
was on the trail of blood, and Hornbaker kept close to him. To the left it led
to the kitchen sink, which was splattered with watery stains. On the table lay
shreds of torn towels.
“Something,”
Lyster said, “has happened here on their way out.”
Hannah, noting
the rags on the table, ran to the towel drawer. “They've stolen the towels,”
she wailed. “The dirty thieves!”
In the other
direction the trail led through to the front hall, where it ended near the
front door. Lyster studied the stains.
“Whatever it
was it happened here,” he decided, “for the drops splash a little toward the
kitchen.”
He looked
about and, with an exclamation, pounced on a small, fresh, splintered hole in
the jamb of the living-room doorway.
“A
bullet-hole. Someone was shot here and made for the kitchen to treat his
wounds—or he was carried there.”
A cold smile
appeared on Hornbaker's face. “The best clue we could hope for. It's a wound
that won't heal quickly, by the quantity and the colour of that blood. I hope,”
his teeth gritted together, “it wasn't too bad.”
He started
into the living-room, and met Shirley in the doorway.
“Tell them to
get ready. We must hurry or we’ll be late.”
Julia opened
her eyes. “Surely you're not going to the opera?”
“If we hurry
we can yet make it in time. We can do it in forty minutes.”
“But I’ve
telephoned the police.”
Hornbaker
frowned. “The police! My dear, this is much too serious for the police . . .
though you did right, of course. They’ll send a gang of blue-coats out here—and
that’ll about end it. Well, Hannah will be here to attend to them. She knows as
much as we do—at least enough to bewilder them till we get back. We can’t miss
the opera.”
“But Hutton
was to drive us. Stapleton was let off for the night, you know.”
“I’ll drive
myself.”
Lyster raised
his head from the bullet-hole in the door-jamb. “How about letting me drive?
I’ll be ready in a few minutes.”
He disappeared
up the stairs three steps at a time. They were waiting for him when he
returned, fretting a little at the delay. They stared, for Lyster was dressed
in the immaculate uniform of their chauffeur.
“But—but,
Lyster—”
“I think,
sir,” Lyster interrupted, “formality is part of the affair on this the opening
night. Stapleton’s clothes fit me none too badly, don’t you think?”
“I always
thought you’d missed your calling,” Shirley said.
Without a word
Lyster clicked his heels, bowed and wheeled toward the kitchen. When he was
gone Hornbaker took Shirley by the arm.
“My girl,
hadn’t you better leave your remarks about Lyster till you know him better?”
Shirley made a
face at him. “Don’t you think he’s worth studying, uncle? I’m always open to
correction . . . and I’m waiting.”
The Lincoln drew up before the
opera house, almost the last of a line of cars that, twenty minutes earlier,
had stretched around two blocks A tremendous crowd milled about the
brilliantly-lighted entrance, held to a semblance of order only by a strong
force of police. A thin passage to the door was with difficulty kept clear.
The glare of
the new installation blinded Lyster so that he drove a few feet too far and was
forced to back into place. Through the glass partition that separated the
driver’s seat from the rear he heard Shirley laugh.
A gold-braided
attendant opened the car door with an elaborate flourish that lifted Clifford
Cringan’s shoulders another inch and delayed his ponderous exit. Indignantly he
had refused to occupy the empty seat beside Lyster, so that the inside of the
car was crowded.
Lyster sat
stiffly erect, staring straight before him, the perfect chauffeur. But only
sub-consciously was he thinking of that. In the glare of the lights he realized
for the first time since the robbery how well they had come through it. It was
almost incredible. The five ruffians, all armed and reckless—Hutton’s brutal
murder before their eyes—the stain of blood on Shirley Cringan’s fingers—that
crowding, terrible panicky darkness of the vault.
And here they
were in the glare of the lights, surrounded by hundreds of interested
onlookers, with a squad of police within touch, and obsequious servants bowing
before them. And Shirley Cringan laughing at his back because of a little slip
with the brakes. But Shirley had never ceased to laugh and scoff at the most
critical moments of the ugly affair.
How, he
wondered, had he come through it—really? There was Nathan Hornbaker’s pat on
the shoulder—and the spot still tingled; but there was, too, Shirley’s scorn
openly directed at him. Had he betrayed the craven terror that flooded him at
moments during the robbery? Like Clifford Cringan, he could have screamed in
that thick blackness of the vault, with a bolted steel door closing them
in—three women who could do nothing for themselves, and a kindly employer who
had come to lean on him in emergency. And must he fail them in the only real
emergency that had come his way? Then a roving hand had encountered the dime.
Suppose the burglars had taken that small coin! Suppose he had not thought of
its possible use! He shuddered, and his eyes shifted. Suddenly he stiffened.
Shirley,
standing within the car at his back until the others alighted, slid the glass
partition back a few inches.
“Our hero has
a thought,” she murmured.
“In the
crowd,” he murmured back, without moving his head, “is a man you’d be
interested in. He has a mole on the side of his chin, and, I believe, hairy
ears.”
“What are you
talking about?”
“Just one of
the robbers. You didn’t notice—”
“I’ll tell
Uncle Nathan,” she declared excitedly. “The police—”
“If you do, I
was wrong. I saw no one. This is Hornbaker night; nothing must upset it. Please
get out.”
For a moment
Shirley hesitated, then, gathering up her skirts, stepped out on the
running-board.
“Better wear
armour,” she said, as she looked back in the car as if seeking something she
had forgotten.
Their arrival
had been heralded through the opera house, for they were forced to run the
gauntlet of a double line of ushers standing stiffly to attention. A pair
escorted them formally to their box through a heavy silence, and they had just
entered the box when the entire caste, in costume, marched on the stage, and
the orchestra struck into one of the choruses. The audience rose en masse.
Nathan
Hornbaker gritted his teeth. “Damn Dustin! I'll get him for this.” He dropped
into the nearest chair.
Julia, her
small form erect, her face wreathed in smiles, beckoned him forward. “You must
come, dear.”
Hornbaker
stumbled to her side, blushing like a schoolgirl. A double line of bows greeted
him from the stage, Farruchi's almost touching the floor.
“Oh, my! Oh,
my!” Hornbaker groaned. “If only I could wipe my neck! I’ll be a rag before
it's over. For heaven's sake, Julia,” as the applause continued, “throw them a
bow. I'd topple over that railing if I tried it. I feel like a glass case, with
those eyes on me.”
Julia smiled
down on the crowd and bowed. The curtain fell, and Hornbaker, calling Queenie
forward, took a chair beside Shirley.
“Where's
Lyster?” he inquired.
“You mean our
chauffeur? Doing his job, I suppose. You won’t need a new uniform when you let
Stapleton go, uncle.”
Her uncle
frowned on her. “Shirley, you ’re a cat. What did you expect of him to-night?”
“To wield that
candlestick,” Shirley replied dramatically, “as Joshua—or who was it?—did with
the jawbone of an ass—or whatever it was—to put the Egyptians to flight—if it
was the Egyptians.”
He chuckled
and pinched her arm. She pulled away petulantly.
“Uncle Nathan,
you spoil that young man.”
“Who’s going
to suffer for it?”
“His—his
friends. He rides too high—and he’s in for a fall.”
“He has
friends who’ll stick to him when he does, don’t forget that, my girl. And don’t
think it’s your duty to bring him down. You can’t do it. Did you ever notice
that he doesn’t seem to know you’re around? You’ve heard the story of the fly
and the ox—or is it the ant and the elephant?”
The curtain
rose, preventing further conversation. Hornbaker leaned forward.
“Lyster would
have enjoyed this,” he whispered.
“He enjoys
everything—in his placid way,” Shirley threw back, “even chauffeuring.”
Hornbaker was
watching Julia. She sat with one arm on the velvet-covered railing, her eyes on
the stage. But her husband knew her mind was far away. Through the succession
of scenes her face was a mask, her applause perfunctory. As the curtain dropped
at the end Hornbaker took her arm.
“You shouldn't
have come, my dear,” he whispered. “It was too much for you after what
happened.”
She flashed
around at him, her eyes ablaze with excitement, and, clutching his hand,
squeezed it spasmodically.
“Don't talk,
dear,” she whispered. “I've so much to tell you later.”
Chapter VI A Squealer
The thrill of
the opera over, the trying event of the early evening laid a depressing hand on
the car. Throughout the return trip scarcely a word was spoken, except when
Cringan, who had taken the seat beside Lyster, slid the glass partition back to
exult on the homage of the crowd. Julia lay with her head snuggled into
Nathan’s shoulder, sending tingles through him at intervals by squeezing his
arm. Hornbaker had never seen her quite like that, and it alarmed him.
The house, when
they reached it, was overrun with police, and Inspector of Detectives Stayner
grumbled at the delay. But a look from Hornbaker silenced him. Julia retired
almost immediately, and her husband, after telling all he knew, left Lyster to
the police and followed to the room he shared with his wife.
He found her
curled on the window-seat, still fully dressed, and he took her tenderly in his
arms. The loss of the canary diamond affected him strangely, for it had given
him his first feeling of satisfaction with the few adequate tributes he was
able to pay her.
“You should be
in bed, dear,” he whispered into her hair. “It’s been a terrible evening for
you. I shouldn’t have let you go to the opera. Hasn’t Charlotte come in yet?”
“I sent her to
bed. I wanted to talk to you, Nathan.” She raised herself abruptly and caught
him by the lapels. “Nathan, I’ve been thinking.”
He smiled down
on her, but he was aware of a tingle of the excitement so evident in her
entering his own veins.
“I knew it,
Julia. You didn’t hear a note of the opera, even when Solokoff was singing his
best right at you. . . . At least, by the applause it must have been his best.
To tell the truth, I was too busy watching you to listen.”
She shook him
impatiently. “Never mind all that. I know who the robber in the red mask was!”
He blinked at
her. “You know—who he was?”
“Yes. It was
Toni—Toni Boitani!”
“Toni—Boitani!
. . . Why—why, of course, you’re right!”
He could not
have told how he knew, but, all in a flash, with Julia’s identification before
him, he was as certain of it as if the man stood there admitting his guilt.
Though he had never paid more than passing attention to the under-gardener who,
engaged by the gardener as assistant and extra houseman, had vanished after two
months of service, he recalled him now as a ratty little fellow with shifty
eyes, whose presence about the place always irritated him.
“Of course
you’re right,” he repeated. “I should have known.”
“It was Toni,
Nathan. Didn’t you notice that he knew where every electric switch was. He knew
the layout of the whole house, the vault, our room and the safe there. Only
someone who had lived in the house could know all that, or any of it.”
Hornbaker got
to his feet. “I'll tell the Inspector. He’s still downstairs, poking about for
the usual finger-prints they’ll never find, because those fellows wore gloves.
We’ll get after Toni right away."
But Julia
caught his arm. “The police will want something more than a hunch, Nathan, and
that's all we have. We musn’t warn Toni too soon.”
“That’s right.”
Hornbaker re-seated himself.
“Let’s see.
It’s only two weeks or so since Toni cleared out, isn’t it?”
“A week ago
last Thursday.”
Hornbaker
considered. “I know little about finger-prints, but there may be some of Toni’s
about somewhere—in his old room, or on the garden tools."
“There’ll be
no finger-prints downstairs, though.”
“No,”
Hornbaker explained, “but the old fingerprints will show if he has a police
record. If it was Toni, he’ll have a record. Those fellows were no amateurs.
That’ll give the police excuse for getting after him. I’ll catch the Inspector
before he leaves. This looks like the one occasion where the police can be of
use—till I call them to make an arrest.”
Early next
morning a couple of officials arrived. They combed the room Toni had occupied
and that had been vacant since, and examined the garden tools. They questioned
the gardener, who admitted that he knew nothing of Toni’s past. They obtained a
composite description of the men. In reality, they needed no more than
Lyster’s. In the few minutes before he was blindfolded Lyster seemed to have
taken in everything about the robbers not covered by their masks
And two days
later, as Hornbaker was leaving the office for the day, Inspector Stayner was
shown in. He dropped his hat on the desk with a flourish.
"Well,
Mr. Hornbaker, that was a great hunch of your wife's. Your Toni Boitani is no
other than Toni Pensa a rogue with a long police record. Served three terms for
robbery, one in this city. We lost track of him several months ago, and we
thought he’d left the city. We really had no cause to keep him under
surveillance."
"You have
him?” Hornbaker asked.
“Not yet.”
"The only
news I want, Inspector, is his capture. I know it was Toni—and I knew he’d have
a police record.”
"We'll
find him,” the Inspector promised confidently. “That is, if he’s in the city.”
"If he
isn’t, I’ll find him,” Hornbaker promised, with equal confidence.
"Of
course"—Inspector Stayner shook his head—"we've nothing really to
charge him with, nothing definite, I mean. We can keep an eye on him, and if he
gets into trouble again—”
Hornbaker
leaned across the desk. “May I hope for such a favour as that the police will
stay out of this altogether till I call on them? Stayner, I’ll handle this
myself. I’m going to run these men down, if it takes every hour of my life and
every dollar I own. I swore it over the body of a faithful servant they
murdered before my eyes, and, as far as they are concerned, they murdered all
the rest of us in that vault. I can afford to hire my own detectives, and I
will. I'll have them followed to the ends of the earth. Stayner, I'll find
them. See?”
The Inspector,
who had flushed at first, let his resentment cool.
“I can’t say I
blame you, Mr. Hornbaker, but you see our position. We can’t trail a criminal
outside the city—that is, ourselves; there are others to do that. But in the
city—well, leave it to us. We’ve a way of finding Toni. He has a girl here.
He’s bound to keep in touch with her. Give us two weeks.”
The fortnight
lacked two days when the telephone on Hornbaker’s desk rang. He was absorbed on
a big deal, and he answered the ring crossly.
“This is
Inspector Stayner. Can you be ready to come with me in twenty minutes, Mr.
Hornbaker?”
“Is it in
connection with the robbery?”
“Yes.”
“I’m ready
now.”
Hornbaker
turned to his two market representatives who, their hair awry and flushed by
the twists of a worrying market, wriggled in their chairs.
“That’ll do.
The deal’s off.”
“But, Mr.
Hornbaker, you stand to lose a quarter of a million if you drop out now.”
“The deal’s
off, I tell you. Now, I’m busy.”
He rose, and
the pair slunk away, tip-toeing as if it were a chamber of death. Hornbaker
pressed a button and Lyster appeared.
“Inspector
Stayner is coming for me in twenty minutes. I’d like you to join us.”
The police-car
bore them to the poorer part of the city, while Hornbaker lay back in his
corner silent and grim. They drew up before a row of cheap shops. A policeman
on the pavement outside, after a glance at the car licence, lounged away. They
entered a narrow doorway and climbed a dark stairway to a darker hall, where a
second policeman leaned against the wall, half asleep. He straightened at sight
of the Inspector, and touched his helmet.
“Everything
all right, Flintop?”
“Yes, sir. The
girl’s in there.”
Inspector
Stayner opened a door softly and ushered his companions into a gloomy, dirty
bedroom. The only light entered through a single dirty window in one corner. It
fell on a bulky policeman seated in a chair tilted against the wall. In the
corner nearest the window, beneath the sloping roof, a bed stood, and at its
side sat a girl with bleached hair and a face that had once been pretty. On the
bed lay a man, only his flushed face, that seemed to be all eyes, visible above
the grimy bedding, which the girl was trying to hold about him.
The girl
greeted them with a scowl. The eyes of the sick man were fixed on them with the
fire of fever. Inspector Stayner waved the girl away and drew two chairs beside
the bed. Lyster took his stand at the footboard.
"This is
Mr. Hornbaker, Toni,” the Inspector said, not unkindly, leaning over the bed.
“You wished to see him.”
The sick man’s
eyes burned more brightly. “You bet I do. He'll get 'em all right—like they got
me. I thought the mask would work. I don’t see how—But it don’t matter now. I’m
done for, and all I want is them that done for me to get theirs too. You’ll do
it, Mr. Hornbaker. I seen it in your eyes that night. I was scared. That’s
why—I fired so quick. And this guy, too”—he nodded toward Lyster—“he spotted
me. He was takin’ us all in. That’s why we blindfolded him.”
The Inspector
interrupted. “Tell your story, Toni.”
Hornbaker felt
himself bracing against the pathos of the scene. It tugged at his heart—the
vile little room, the filthy bed, the fevered face on the pillow, the girl with
one soft streak, the shuddery presence of the police where Death was so near.
Toni moved his
head restlessly.
“I came clean,
Inspector,” he said, with something like a whimper in his voice.
“It’s the only
way to get the man who shot you, Toni. Tell Mr. Hornbaker who did it. You
wouldn’t tell me.”
“Yes, yes,
I’ll tell him, ’cause I know he’ll get him. It was Baldy bumped me off.”
“Baldy? Baldy
who? What’s his real name?”
Toni shook his
head. “I don’t know. If I did it wouldn’t be no good. Boitani ain’t my name.
Everybody knows Baldy—if you can get the gang to squeal. Baldy’s a sly one.
He’ll lie doggo. He’s got that sparkler—the big yellow one. Least he had it
when he plugged me, the dirty skunk!”
The girl
stepped forward and leaned over the footboard at Lyster’s side.
“Don’t get
worked up, Toni, please don’t. Just tell them. We’ll get Baldy. I’ll help.”
“They robbed
me, cleaned me out, they did,” Toni hissed. “They got that fifty thousand. I
ain’t got nothin’—nothin’.”
For a moment
the girl leaned over the bed, her eyes burning into her lover’s. Then, with a
blaze of chance, she thrust her hand into the bosom of her dress and produced a
small cotton bag. Into the other hand she poured two rings.
"There’s
these,” she said, dropping the rings on the bed. "It s all right, Toni.
They ain’t no use to me without you. If it’ll help you any with the police,
that's all I want.” She faced Hornbaker. “That’s all he has, ’fore God it is.
You’ll remember I gave them back, Inspector, for Toni’s sake.”
Hornbaker
regarded the rings vaguely.
“They’re Mrs.
Cringan’s,” Lyster explained, and put them in his pocket.
“Who were the
others, Toni?” Hornbaker asked.
Tom looked at
the ceiling. “Aw, I ain’t got much agin them. I ain’t splittin’. It’s
Baldy—he’s all I want. You get him, Mr. Hornbaker.”
"I'll get
him,” Hornbaker promised, “but only if you tell me everything. I’ll see you
have a doctor too, and the best of care.”
“Doctors!”
Toni laughed harshly. “It’s too late now. I was too scared to see one when it
might have been some use. They always tell the police—the good ones." He
closed his eyes.
The girl
touched his cheek gently with her fingers.
"Toni,
tell them, tell them everything. We got to get Baldy. . . . If you don’t tell,
I will.”
The dying man
opened his burning eyes. “You goin back on me too, Jinny?”
“It’s not
going back on you, Toni, it’s for your good." Her eyes filled with tears.
“I want to make it easier for you; you know it’s that.”
For a full
minute no one spoke or stirred. Toni lay with his gaze fixed on the ceiling,
his forehead wrinkled. The girl leaned over him, sobbing.
"Yer a
good girl, Jinny, If I’m goin’—someone must get Baldy for it. I’ll tell.” For a
space only his breathing was audible. “No, you tell them. You know all I do—and
you can tell it better.”
The girl
turned to the two men seated beside the bed and talked for several minutes.
Inspector Stayner made swift notes and asked a few questions. Toni listened
uneasily.
“They’ll make
for Europe ,” he said. “They got enough to keep
out of the way for a year or two.”
“But,”
Hornbaker said, “that’s only four of you. There were five.”
Toni shook his
head irritably. “The other one—I don’t know no name, just 'The Skunk.’ That’s
all I ever heard him called.”
Inspector
Stayner watched the wounded man’s face intently. “You’re sure that’s all? The
Skunk? Why did you call him that—what did it mean?”
“I dunno. I
never worked with him before, but I've heard lots about him. It was Frenchy got
him with us. Friend of Frenchy’s, I guess. The Skunk was the big guy. He only
does the big jobs.”
"You saw
him only once?” the Inspector asked.
“Oh, I seen
him oftener. He used to come to town three or four times a year, to pull off a
big job. Then he'd clear out. He had the brains—always bossed the jobs, they
told me.”
Inspector
Stayner slid forward in his chair. “You say he came to town three or four times
a year, and always for a big job. When was he here last—I mean, before the
Hornbaker robbery?”
But Toni shook
his head stubbornly. “That’s all. I never thought I'd be a squealer.” He
regarded the girl reproachfully. “You done this, Jinny. It’s dirty.”
The girl flung
her head defiantly. “It was dirtier trying to bump you off. I’ll do anything to
pay them back.”
“It’s only
Baldy I want,” Toni repeated. “You won’t never catch up with The Skunk. He’s
too slippery.”
Lyster stepped
round the bed where he could see Toni s face. It was Baldy shot you. He shot
you in the front hall, and they took you back to the kitchen to tie your wound
up. Wasn’t that it? They tore up the towels—”
“They?” Toni
swore viciously. “They—nothin’. They all skipped out and left me to look after
myself. They took everythin’ but them two rings, and they ain’t real stones.
The dirty rats!”
The girl
turned pleading eyes on them. “Why don’t you go now? You’ve got all we know.
Can’t you see it’s bad for him? Give him a chance.”
“Did he give
Hutton a chance?” Hornbaker asked bitterly. “Did he give any of us a chance?”
But he got to his feet and made for the door.
As they left
the room, the Inspector caught the girl’s eye and beckoned her toward the hall.
In a few moments she joined them there.
“Do you know
who The Skunk is?” the Inspector asked.
“I’ve seen him
once. That’s all.”
“What does he
look like?”
“He’s a big,
burly fellow, with an awful thick neck, and a sort of nasty smile mostly.
Foreigner—dark-skinned, but not Italian. Mostly he wears nice clothes, but
sometimes, when he’s on a job, they say, he looks like a tough. When he’s
dressed up he smells—sweet-like, scenty.”
A gleam shot
into the official’s eyes. “I know him! Now, my girl, you can help a lot, and it
won’t hurt your friend in there. I’ll be here to-morrow at this hour. Think up
all you can about The Skunk, and get what you can from Toni.”
As they rolled
back in the police-car the Inspector made no effort to conceal his excitement.
“By Jove, this
looks good. We’ve been after that fellow for two years—if it’s the one I mean.
He’s a perfume seller—or he makes out to be that—Syrian or something. Every few
months he flies to town with his bag of perfumes. Nothing fast or swell enough
for him but a plane. We’ve had our eye on him, because there seemed something
fishy about him, but we could never connect him with anything. Happened to be
at the airport once when he landed. ‘The Skunk,’ eh? I see where he got his
nickname. He’s the man we want most. The others are small fish. . . . Of
course, there’s Baldy. In a day or so he’ll be a murderer. That puzzles me. Why
did Baldy, whoever he is, shoot Toni Pensa?”
“ I wonder if
I don’t know the answer,” Hornbaker mused.
Chapter VII A Lecture
ROLAND LYSTER
drew the Chrysler runabout against the curb before the Cringans’ apartment,
and, reaching across Shirley Cringan, opened the door. But she made no move to
alight. Instead, she braced her feet comfortably before her and leaned back.
“That,” she
remarked, stooping to examine the speedometer, “was a long way around to get
home.”
Lyster stared
straight before him. “Oh?”
“Of course,
I’m in no hurry—we’re in no hurry,”
she said sarcastically. “This fortnight of helping us get ready must have
taught you that.” She laughed. “Of course, mumsie would be in a hurry if we
weren’t to start for a year.”
“If it had
been your mother—” he began, and ended with a shrug.
“I see.
Because you’d know she was in a hurry.” When he made no reply she continued:
“One can’t blame her. The Cringans have never been vagabonds—we never had the
money for it. Really, you know, I’m as excited about it as mumsie. I should be
in a hurry.”
Lyster said
nothing, and the girl turned irritably to face him.
“Why don’t you
say something? Why are you so—so dumb with me?” By her tone she could have
slapped him.
“Self-preservation,”
he replied. “One proof that silence is golden.”
“Don’t exert
yourself to prove it to me. Seeing that we’ll be gone in two days, further
proof is unnecessary. . . . You forget that you may provide another reason for
our eagerness to get away.”
“I don’t
flatter myself—though you’ve made it evident enough.”
“It would have
been less evident,” she retorted, “if you hadn’t acted all the time like a
martyr. You can’t be goaded to retaliate, can you?”
“Not with
you—not with a woman.”
“So that,” her
mood changing quickly, in the way she had, “all my efforts have been wasted!
Let’s hope some day you’ll find your tongue.”
“I’ve found it
better that you should not find it, Miss Cringan. It’s more comfortable for us
all. . . . So now you’ll be without a purpose in life. Things will be dull for
you.”
She tossed her
head. “It’s a broad world we’re going to, a well-peopled world—variety and all
that. Don’t over-estimate your place in it.”
“I try not to.
You’ll enjoy the change—the broadness, I mean, and the well-peopled places. I
always found change good.”
“Oh?” She said
nothing for a time, one hand toying with the red patent leather bag on her
knee.
“Evidently
you’ve revised your opinion of it.”
He faced her,
surprised. “What do you mean?”
“You’re
content with things as they are, a fatalist.”
“Content so
far as things go,” he agreed.
“Content,” she
insisted. . . . “ Yet I understand you’ve had a varied career—before you came
to Uncle Nathan.”
He shook his
head doubtfully. “Varied—in a way. But the undercurrent was usually the same,
the atmosphere in which I lived.”
“Yet you talk
to me of the benefits of change. You don’t need to. If you’d lived your life in
the Cringan household you’d know that—that any change held out hope . . . too
much hope. I’m hoping now. Daddy’s hoping. Mumsie’s hoping—and praying. . . .
It’s only daddy that counts. He hasn’t had a chance, he says; bad environment,
and all that. . . . Perhaps he’s right. He looks for heaven from this trip, a
heaven happier than you and I can imagine.”
She peered at
him with tilted head, waiting for him to speak. But he remained silent.
“And,” she
went on, “you think I’m not angel enough to fit into that heaven; I’m certain
to disrupt it.”
“Why should I
think that?”
“If for no
other reason, for talking like this to—to a stranger.”
“I’m sorry,”
he said.
“Sorry you
think so?” she demanded fiercely.
“Sorry I’m a
stranger—after two years.”
The fact was
that for one of the few times in his life Roland Lyster was upset, unsure of
himself, unsure even of what he was saying. Shirley Cringan’s confidences were
too rare, her moods too uncertain, to give an unprepared young man a chance.
The girl let
it pass. “If this is daddy’s chance, mother and I are happy, whatever the
cost.”
"You’ll
find living on the continent cheaper,” he said inanely.
"So
soothing,” she scoffed. “Indeed, almost hypnotic.” She glanced at him sideways,
half amused, half irritated at his obtuseness. “You know, of course, that not
the stock market but Uncle Nathan is the fairy godmother.”
The bluntness
of it, its hurt concealed beneath a conversational tone, startled Lyster.
Though his employer had told him nothing, he had suspected it from the first.
“You’re the
only child Mr. Hornbaker knows, Miss Cringan,” he said. “Nothing delights him
more than—”
She tapped her
foot impatiently. “You’re so—so damned proper!” she blazed. “Did you ever say
the wrong thing?”
“Apparently. .
. . And when I’m silent I’m wrong.”
She threw him
a frowning glance, then laughed. “Well, there’s the story of the Cringan
adventure, its origin and its hopes. I’ve wanted so long to unburden myself.
Thanks for letting me. . . . I don’t believe we’ll keep going long enough to
circle the globe. Daddy will tire of it—and the very thought of returning here
would kill every ambition he ever had, at least until he’s made his name. What
I’m afraid of is that we’ll land at one of those horrible art colonies where
they stroke one another’s back and scoff through their rags and their vices at
the outside world. Can Shirley Cringan stand against it? What’s to become of
her?”
Lyster said:
“I’ve no fear for you, Miss Cringan.”
“Of course
not. Fear wouldn’t be the word—because it’s not a matter of personal concern to
you. You’ve set me down in your mind as a scatter-witted, feather-brained kid
who’ll fit herself into any nasty life there is, so long as it’s exciting. . .
. and the way I’m talking I don’t blame you.”
“At least,” he
commented, “it’s one time you don’t blame me. But you go out of your way to
impress on me what you think of me.”
“What I think
of you! What does that matter? You’re what you are—and it’s as difficult to be
deceived in you as it is to change you. You talk of fear. What right have you
to fear for me—or not to fear?” She was working herself into a fine fury.
“I gathered
that you thought I’d be interested or you wouldn’t have told me so much,” he
said helplessly. “This stranger that I am—well, I justify my concern for the
Cringans by my association with your uncle. You can’t bully me out of that,” he
ended doggedly.
“Did anyone
ever bully you into or out of anything?”
“They’ve been
known to try. Let’s see, I think we did all we set out to do—the tickets, the
stickers, the route maps, the itinerary, the berths, the phrase books, the—”
Shirley put
her hands to her ears. “You sound like a voters’ list, or a dictionary. You’re
the perfect valet. No wonder you’re content with your job.”
“Content as
far as things go, I said,” he corrected.
“And they’ve
gone as far as they’ll ever go. What do you expect? That Uncle Nathan will fold
up his arms and hand over to you?” She went on in a breathless voice before he
had a chance to speak: “That’s crude, isn’t it? And Shirley Cringan, for the
first time in her life, apologizes. But you do nag one to extravagances.”
“I’m sorry,”
he said, but not at all humbly.
Shirley
laughed. But as suddenly she sobered. "Taking advantage of your expression
of concern for the Cringans, may one ask if you have no higher ambition than to
end your days as Uncle Nathan’s valet?”
It was
Lyster’s turn to smile. “You’ve heard that stock unanswerable: Have you stopped
beating your wife?”
Someone rapped
on a window, and Shirley looked up and waved to her mother, but made no other
move.
“Mr. Lyster,
you can be as—as discourteous as I am, but in an oily way I never attained.”
“I’m at your
mercy,” he said shortly.
Shirley
sighed. “The truly English retort. Oh, well, the Cringans will be footloose day
after to-morrow, so why waste the remaining hours in wrangling?"
Neither spoke
for some time.
“So I’m to
take it that you’re settled, Mr. Lyster —Uncle Nathan’s social secretary,
tutor, reference library, consultant, shield, or what have you if you dislike
to be called a valet.”
“If I were all
that it would be a life’s work to be proud of,” he replied. “There’s only one
Nathan Hornbaker. Am I wrong?”
“Emphatically
so!” she stormed. Her tone was like the crack of a whip. “Have you no higher
ambition than that? Have you never thought of a bigger job, a real man’s job?
Will you slink in the shadow of his skirts all your life? You must have saved
enough to take a chance.”
She glared at
him, awaiting a reply.
“Go on,” he
urged.
“Or do you
expect your friends to hunt a job for you, a real job, one of the many big jobs
that are looking for big men?”
“Have I asked
assistance?”
"If you
had there’d be some hope for you,” she retorted crisply. “Why don’t you break
away and look for them? Get out and search—travel—run them down. Have you less
ambition than daddy? You're young and—” She hesitated.
"Timid,"
he suggested, smiling. “Are you suggesting that I throw up this job and—try a
trip around he world—perhaps to settle down in some colony of lofty noses and
low morals? I might even act as courier to the Cringans.”
"You
might do worse," she snapped. “ But don’t be silly."
“How can I
help it—being what I am?” He faced her squarely at last. “Miss Cringan, I’ve a
big job on hand right now. It’s none the less big because it concerns the
Cringans. And I don’t have to be traitor to your uncle to carry it through. I’m
out to run down the robbers who killed Hutton, who made your finger bleed, who
left us all to smother in that vault. That’s my job. Does it look worth while?”
A wave of red
had leaped to her face as he talked, but at the end her eyes flashed angrily.
"Uncle
Nathan has no right to ask it of you. It’s dangerous. Those men won’t be taken
alive. There are professionals trained for such work, men whose life-calling it
is. They take the risk for pay.” The red of her cheeks deepened as he continued
to stare at her, and she turned her face away. “Oh, well, if you prefer being a
bloodhound.”
She leaped
lightly out. As she ran up the steps he called after her:
“So long as
I’ve ceased to be a hero.”
But she had
the last word:
“Good-bye—and
don’t forget to keep your powder dry—and put on your flannels next month.”
Chapter VIII Recognition
The Platonia,
a cabin-class steamship, cast its last hawser and slipped into the bay, to the
noisy chugging of a pair of powerful tugboats. In the gloom of midnight the
skyline of New York
was little more than specks of light that might have been stars. The decks were
almost empty, for most of the passengers had come on board earlier and gone to
bed, and the later arrivals had been driven indoors by a chill wind blowing
through the Narrows .
On the highest
covered deck, his hands clutching the railing, Roland Lyster stood looking
forward into the night. Now and then he glanced casually about the deck, but he
remained where he was until the open sea was reached. Then, alone at last, he
walked slowly to the nearest doorway and vanished.
Dropping down
a flight of stairs, he reached his cabin and entered. For several minutes he
sat on the edge of the berth in the dark, then, rising, he switched on a light
and stood before the little mirror over the basin. As he looked he smiled
lugubriously.
“Another week,
Roland, my lad, and you’ll look respectable enough to pass the police.” He
rubbed a fortnight’s beard. “And think of the razor-blades you save—with such a
fine place to get rid of them. By the time you reach Southampton
you may even get over laughing at yourself. Roland Lyster with a vandyke. Ye
gods! If some frank young thing like Shirley Cringan could only see me now! . .
. I’ll hike back a monocle with me, too . . . if ever I go back.” He went and
leaned his elbows in a porthole. "At any rate, there’s sure to be slashes
of colour in my life before it’s over.”
He remained
for several minutes staring into the night. Now and then a flash of white swept
within his view and swift drops of water slashed against the glass. He turned
and approached the door, standing there for a time, his ear to the crack.
No sound but
the thudding of the engines reached him, and presently he switched off the
light and opened the door an inch or two to peer along the narrow passage.
Seizing a dressing-gown, he strolled out and made for the nearest washroom. As
he turned to the door, he could see both ways along the passage. It was empty.
Darting into a narrow branching passage, he opened a door at the end without
knocking and entered.
The room was
in darkness, but as the door closed a switch clicked and a man, fully dressed,
put his finger to his lips and nodded toward the partition behind the berths.
Ten minutes
later Lyster reappeared in the passage. Once more he made for the washroom, and
this time he entered. A man in trousers and shirt was wiping his hands beside
one of the basins. Lyster, paying no attention, went on. But as he passed a
single spark of light on the man’s finger caught his attention. A moment later
the man was gone.
For a long
time Lyster stood leaning against the wall, his eyes dancing, breathing as if
he had been running. Then, passing through the opposite door, he rounded the
bow and reached his own room.
In the morning
he was up early and rang for his breakfast.
“When does the
barber’s shop open?” he asked of the steward.
“Nine-thirty,
sir.”
“Get me the
first chair promptly on time. If I can be served sooner all the better.”
“Yes, sir.”
To the minute
he found his way to the barber’s shop, meeting only two women and a strange man
on the way.
“I want a
haircut,” he said. “I want it cut so I can part it in the centre. And this
beard—trim it so it won’t look too juvenile.”
The barber
stood away and looked him over.
“You’re going
to have trouble, sir. That hair’s been parted where it is now most of your
life, I guess. A bottle of brilliantine, now—”
"All
right—anything to make it stay parted as I wish it. I’m tired of this way.”
Half an hour
later he emerged, his beard trimmed, his hair parted in the centre and glued
down to a black sheen. “Makes a big difference,” the barber had confided as he
removed the apron.
Lyster went on
deck. Several men were grouped about the deck-steward. As Lyster passed one of
the men reached out and caught his sleeve.
“Want to get
in on this?” he asked. “It’s the day’s pool.”
“How much?”
The man rolled
a big cigar between his lips and scowled. “You that kind of a sport?”
"It’s always
been ’arf a quid,” explained the steward, “but this gentleman ’e wants it a
quid—a pound, I mean.”
“Hell!”
scoffed the “gentleman,” jerking the cigar over the railing, “who wants to
foozle with pennies? Make it five dollars, I say. Call it a pound if you like,
it’s all the same to me. There’s mine.” He drew a roll from his pocket and,
tearing a bill from it, shoved it into the steward’s reluctant hand. “What say,
mates?” glaring around on the group.
No one dared
to be a piker, and the amount was fixed. The one who had stopped Lyster looked
him over.
“You act like
a sport. I’ll go you one better: Here’s ten to bet the figure’s under five,
leaving out the nothing. Are you on?”
Lyster laughed
and laid a ten dollar bill beside the one jabbed at the steward.
“Say, you’re a
guy after my own heart.” The man grasped Lyster’s hand. “My name’s Sydney . What’s yours?”
“Halton—Merrill
Halton,” Lyster said.
Lyster broke
away after a time and mingled with the promenading crowd. As he went along he
examined the names on the deck-chairs. Stopping before one, he waited for the
deck-steward to pass.
“I want a
chair,” he said. “That one suits me.”
The steward
lifted a label attached to the chair.
Sorry, sir,
but it’s taken. Lady ast for it last night—just there.”
Lyster slid a
bill into his hand. “I want that one.”
“Yes, sir. I
think I can manage it. Your name? Oh yes, you said ’Alton , didn’t you? I’d suggest sir, you sit
there right away, so the lady will see you when she comes on deck. She ain’t
come out yet.”
Lyster seated
himself and closed his eyes. After a time a thud in the chair on his left told
him that someone of weight and self-indulgence had landed there. A heavy hand clutched
his wrist.
"Say’ is
what I call luck. A dame on one side’s enough for me, and I guess I’d pick you
for the other I can get all the dames I want when I want ’em ”
Lyster opened
his eyes with an affected start. "Oh, Mr. Sydney! That’s—”
Aw, cut the mister.
How about a cigar? I’ve three pet vices—cigars, gambling, and—well, the other
isn't women.” He chuckled.
Through
half-closed eyes Lyster was taking him in. "One of mine is cigarettes,” he
said, taking out his case.
"I
wouldn’t size you up that way,” said Sydney ,
biting off the end of a cigar and spitting it noisily over his feet.
They talked as
they smoked, in the intermittent way of men with much in common, congenial
friends amidst a city of strangers.
Next day
Lyster did not appear on deck until noon, having avoided his new friend most of
the previous day. The same group of men was gathered about the deck-steward. Sydney bellowed a welcome
and waved a handful of bills.
"Say, I
knew what I was doing when I made it a fiver. Two hundred bucks! It almost pays
for there and back. You’ve ponied up fifteen of it, by God! Now I’ll take you
on for a game of shuffleboard for a fiver. Are you on?”
Lyster agreed,
and Sydney
caught him by the arm and dragged him away, leaving a score of disapproving and
disappointed eyes staring after him. The way to the bar was in the other
direction.
They found
another pair willing to play, and the game ran the usual uncertain course until
one of the strangers, named Redfern, on the last end made a remarkable shot and
cleaned off a big score that looked certain for Sydney and Lyster. Sydney , soured by the
defeat, paid the bet they had made and dragged Lyster away without another word
to their opponents.
Lyster
suggested eating. “I’m hungry. This is the shortest way down.” He led to a
companion-way in the bow and started down the steep steps. Sydney was next, and behind him their late
opponents.
Lyster had
descended four steps when, at a shout from above, he turned, clutching the iron
rail with all his strength. He was just in time to brace himself against the
heavy body of his partner. Above them Redfern stared down on them with wide,
frightened eyes.
“I’m—so—sorry!”
he stammered.
With an oath Sydney regained his feet
on the companion-way and started furiously back. But Lyster took hold of him.
“It was an
accident,” he said.
Redfern had
retreated a step. “I’m so sorry,” he repeated. "I stumbled.” One finger
scratched in an embarrassed way at the corner of his mouth.
"I should
say you did,” Sydney
snarled. “You damned near broke my neck! If Halton hadn’t been there I’d—"
“I tripped
over the ledge,” the agitated man explained. “I almost fell myself.” Redfern
was a broad-shouldered man, with a square jaw and bushy brows, and his
agitation was almost ludicrous in a man of his size.
"I don't
care what you almost did.” Sydney replied brutally.
"I can’t
do more than apologize, gentlemen,” Redfern said more coldly.
"Too
damned near a thing to be comfortable!” he growled to Lyster. “I don’t like
that Redfern.”
Lyster
admitted that it was clumsy. “But on shipboard one can’t get away from people
one doesn’t like."
"Looks
like a racketeer to me,” Sydney
murmured glowering after the retreating Redfern. “I know the breed, I do.”
“I wouldn’t be
surprised,” Lyster agreed slyly, and smiled up at his new friend. “I happen to
know a bit about them myself.”
“Education has
many uses,” Lyster said, and returned the wink.
Day by day
their intimacy increased. Now and then they came in contact with Redfern, who
seemed to be one of those over-friendly men who make bores of themselves on
shipboard. Distress at his clumsiness, too, drove him to frequent apologies and
an irritatingly humble manner with Sydney .
The latter frankly dismissed the man, but nothing could hold him off. It was
only when Lyster explained Redfern’s ways that Sydney came to endure him.
Twenty times a
day Sydney had
something fresh to bet on. Betting was a passion with him, and he won more than
he lost. He suggested a club that he christened “The Racketeers,” a club that
seemed to have no object but to bet, and he managed to attract half a dozen of
his fellow-passengers to it. But the name did not hold after Lyster proposed
calling it “The Sabbatarians.” The name, when Sydney understood it, caught his fancy.
Redfern was bluntly excluded.
There came a
day, a week out from New York ,
when the intimacy of the two friends ripened to confidences. They were seated in
their deck-chairs, smoking, Sydney
in a jovial mood over a bet he had just won. Lyster was thoughtful, and Sydney teased about it.
At last Lyster
rolled his head where he could see his friend. "As a man of experience, Sydney , where would you
advise a friend to go to get out of the way for a time?”
"Not
likely. . . . More serious than that. Suppose the police were after you. I’m
just asking.” Sydney
drew three long breaths and expelled the smoke noisily. “Depends. . . . Depends
on many things. If you’ve the jack, you’ve got the world before you. Some
countries won’t give a guy up. Extraditions, they call it. But you’ll know
about that. Look at Insull. . . . Depends, too, if you want to enjoy life while
you’re doggo.”
“Naturally I
do.”
An explosive
chuckle broke from Sydney ’s
lips. "Say, buddy, you and me’s in the same boat, looks like. I’m not
travelling for my health, you bet your life. Me, I’m looking for peace—for a
while—and a bit of fun thrown in. I can afford it. When I’ve scouted about a
bit, looking the scenery over back home, I’m making for Monte Carlo . Oodles of sport there, a man s
chance to do some betting. If you’ve got the jack they don’t ask no questions
there. When I’ve broke the bank I’ll shoot back to God’s country I guess.”
Lyster jerked
a hand toward a diamond ring on Sydney ’s
little finger. It had been cut on the inside to enlarge it.
“Yours is girl
trouble,” he said.
“Oh, that! ” Sydney lifted his hand.
Lyster lazily
reached toward it. “Looks like a sparkler.”
“Sure it’s a
sparkler.” Sydney
took it off and passed it over.
“Want to sell
it? I’ve a girl back home could wear it.”
“What d’yuh
reckon it’s worth?”
Lyster
examined it closely, his head bent to hide his eyes. “To you, do you mean?”
“Oh, I’ll be
on the level with a friend.”
“Give you a
couple of hundred for it.”
“Maybe. But
it’s not worth that to either of us. It’s hard to sell a stone like that. Too
easily kept track of. And to me it’s only worth giving away. A bit shallow,
too, isn’t it? There are certain proportions that have to be followed in a good
stone.” He held it close to his eyes. “What’s this on the band—rust? I thought
it was platinum.”
Lyster nodded
affably. “That’s right. . . . I might make it two-fifty.”
“I ain’t giving
it away, not to nobody.” Sydney
thrust the ring in his pocket, and Lyster knew he had lost his chance. “I don’t
need the dough now. I’ll keep it till I do. It’s brought me luck.”
“When you
think of selling,” Lyster said idly, “give me first chance.”
The tone
belied his feelings, for he had seen the ring on Sydney ’s finger in the wash-room that first
night, and inside he had read: “ Shirley, from Uncle.” And the stain was
Shirley Cringan’s blood. On the side of George Sydney’s chin, too, was a mole
he had fixed in his mind that memorable night, and the man’s ears were hairy.
Chapter IX The Missing Ring
As the journey
drew to an end Redfern’s attentions increased, and gradually Sydney melted to his advances.
The two, with
Lyster a moderate partner, spent much of the time drinking in the smoking-room,
Sydney ’s
dislike of Redfern vanishing before the latter’s willingness to foot the bills.
Redfern’s apologetic approach, one finger modestly scratching his cheek, became
a familiar introduction to a night’s carousal.
It was the
night before they were due to reach Southampton .
The Cornish coast lay on their left, a broken line of cliff and upland, with
scattered white homes and unobtrusive lighthouses. Friends of the voyage were
vowing everlasting memory in last-minute intimacies, and even persistent
strangers smiled on one another.
Lyster, Sydney
and Redfern met in the smoking-room. For an hour they drowned old antagonisms
and pledged eternal friendship in succeeding glasses. Sydney and Redfern showed
unmistakable signs of over-indulgence, but Lyster had quietly kept his head
clear by confining himself to a single drink. But he had smoked a lot, and his
eyes appeared heavy with sleep. The other two almost ignored him. He yawned
flagrantly.
“If you don’t
mind,” he murmured sleepily, “I’ll turn in. See you in the morning, Sydney , and don’t forget
lunch at the Strand Corner House day after to-morrow, if we get separated at
the wharf. I’ll be taking a later train to London . A friend I want to see in Southampton .”
But Lyster,
with a wave of his hand, withdrew. Redfern called for another bottle. Sydney tried
half-heartedly to interpose. It was his turn. But Redfern would not consider
it. “Make it two Scotches instead, buddy,” he ordered of the bar-tender. “And
have one yourself.” He flung a ten-shilling note toward the counter.
As Sydney reached for his
glass Redfern thrust his hand back.
“One minute,
ol’ friend, one minute. This one’s a toast." He nestled the two glasses in
the crook of one arm and laid his other hand over them. “Whadyu say? Le’s have
one, a big one. Here ’tis: ‘To future meetings, over here and back home.’
You’ll be back in God’s country soon, eh?”
“You bet yer
life—some time.”
“Well, there
'tis: ‘Future meetings, and may we know each other better.' Drink, you sponge!”
With a maudlin
chuckle he shoved one of the glasses across the table. Sydney swallowed his in two gulps, and at the
end licked his lips with a slight frown.
“Damn poor
stuff they serve here!” he grumbled.
Redfern wiped
his forehead. “Hot in here, ain’t it, buddy?”
“How about
some air ? Do us both good. Then a night-cap and we’ll call it a day.”
They linked
arms and staggered to the open deck, while the bar-tender winked after them.
“The worst of
this job,” he grumbled, “is I lose my best customers every nine days.”
Through the
porthole Lyster watched the sun rise. Land lay on either side as they slid
slowly along. The England
he had left in something of a panic three years ago lay before him, but he was
not thinking of it. He wondered what lay ahead, what adventures, but
principally what success. With some trepidation he realized how little he had
to ensure success, though he had left New
York with less prospect than now.
Someone
knocked on the cabin door, and he called: "Come in.” He did not turn,
thinking it was the steward.
He heard the
door open and close, and he turned to see Sydney
standing against it, his face red with anger. Lyster’s heart missed a beat.
“All ready to
land?” he asked.
Lyster’s eyes
widened with surprise. “Plucked? You mean you’ve been robbed?”
“That ring’s
gone.”
“You mean—the
ring you showed me the other day?”
“Wait a
minute. You don’t mean you think Redfern stole that ring?”
“That’s what.
He got me spifled—drugged me or something. I think I can drink anyone under the
table. But I just remember getting out on deck, feeling like the devil—and this
morning I wake up on my bunk with my clothes all on, and the ring’s gone. Three
hundred bucks gone. That’s what you offered, wasn’t it?”
Lyster did not
correct him. “What are you going to do about it?”
“I’m looking
for him, damn his hide! I’ll make him come across, or I’ll hand him to the
police—if I don’t cut his blasted liver out!” His eyes were suddenly bloodshot with
the intensity of his fury. “The damned, dirty thief! That’s what he’s been
working me for all the time. He wanted that ring.”
“But how did
he know—Oh, I see. He’d seen it on your finger. But you haven’t worn it for
days.”
“Did he clean
you out—your money, I mean?”
“No.” Sydney shook his head.
“That’s the funny part of it. He just took the ring.”
“But a thief
would take your money first. Are you sure you haven’t mislaid it?”
He stormed
from the cabin. Lyster followed. As if the scene was prepared, they came face
to face with Redfern in the passage. Sydney
clutched him by the shoulder and dragged him back into Lyster’s cabin and
slammed the door.
He thrust his
red face into Redfern’s. “Now, you dirty thief, come across with that ring!”
With no
apparent effort Redforn threw his hand off. “Just what are you talking about?”
he demanded. He turned to glower at Lyster. “Say, what is this, anyway? Better
spill it, and make it short. The boat lands in a few minutes. I’m waiting.” He
folded his arms, and as he stood he towered two inches above his accuser.
But the latter
was too furious to notice what little chance he would have in a clash. He
strode up to Redfern and shook his fist in his face.
“You know what
I mean. If you don’t hand over that ring, Redfern, I’ll get the police on you
the minute we land.”
“What ring?”
Redfern remained calm.
It only added
to Sydney ’s
anger. “The ring you stole last night, you damned thief, after you doped my
whisky! You got me drunk and cleaned me out.”
“I did, did
I?” Redfern remained undisturbed. “Well, it’s funny I spent so much money on
you if I doped you. One drink would have been enough for that. You speak of a
ring. Is that the girl’s ring you were wearing? I haven’t seen it on you
lately. I thought maybe you’d found a skirt on the boat who liked it.”
“It was stolen
off me last night, I tell you,” Sydney
raved, “and you did it. If you don’t pony up you’ll be in the hoosegow the
minute we land.”
Redfern thrust
his face forward, and his eyes flashed.
"I will, will
I? You’d get me into a row, would you, whether I stole your ring or not? You’d
accuse me of theft, and I’d have to wriggle out of it by myself. Well, Sydney , I haven’t time for
that. I haven’t time to bother with you. Go ahead and hand me over to the police.
Then come along and explain where you got that girl’s ring. It might even be
that the ring would turn up, and the police would ask questions about it. That
ring didn’t belong to you. All one needed to know that is your ugly mug and the
kind of ring it was. And the English police are a nosy lot. All right, go
ahead. I’m easily found.”
He wheeled and
stalked from the cabin, slamming the door behind him.
For a moment
or two Sydney
glared at the closed door, and the colour left his face. Lifting his fists, he
hissed:
“If I ever lay
eyes on Redfern again I’ll drill a hole in him!”
Chapter X On The Trail
LYSTER saw no
more of Sydney .
Avoiding him while passing the Customs, he left the wharf as quickly as he
could and seated himself in the lounge of an hotel. There he waited, his eye on
the door. An hour later Redfern entered. He looked about, saw Lyster, and made
straight for him.
“Well,” he
said, with a shrug, “so far so good.” He drew the diamond ring from his pocket
and dropped it in Lyster’s hand. “This may look all right to you. It doesn’t to
me. Getting the ring doesn’t bother me. It’s the man I’m after. What’s the big
idea, anyway?” He sank morosely into a chair. “We start out to get The Skunk,
run into a bit of wonderful luck, and you refuse to make the most of it. My job
is to get these men, and it doesn’t matter a damn the order in which I get
them! That’s what I’m paid for—”
“You’re paid,
Redfern,” Lyster replied, “to get the gang that killed poor Hutton, but you’re
also paid to do what I say.”
Redfern
bounced forward. “I do what you say so long as it doesn’t interfere with my
duty. Mr. Hornbaker gave me a job. If any scheme of yours threatens to block
that, I’d rather throw the whole thing up than lend myself to it.”
Lyster leaned
back in the chair and tipped his fingers together.
“Don’t imagine
I’m going to interfere with our final success. I’m more concerned with that
than you. If I happen to have a different idea of the way to carry it through,
I have to be convinced I’m wrong. We’re after The Skunk, of course. But we’re
as near him now as ever, and will be next week, if we follow my plan. The Skunk
can wait. He won’t if we proceed too precipitately. This stroke of luck means
more than you imagine, Redfern, and we must look at all the possible contingencies.
I don’t propose to lose sight of Sydney —”
“You’d have no
further worry about him, and we could have gone straight on for The Skunk, if
you’d let me hand him over to the police right here. But you let him get away,
and—who knows?”
Lyster spoke in
a lower tone, for there were several seated in the lounge.
“Listen,
Redfern, and try to look ahead. We’re after the whole gang, not just one here
and there. Mr. Hornbaker will not be satisfied if a single one escapes—as
dissatisfied as if the whole lot evade the punishment they deserve. We haven’t
let Sydney
escape. He’ll meet me to-morrow at the Corner House in London .”
“You’ve a vast
and surprising credulity,” Redfern scoffed, “if you think so. He’s half warned
now, and he’s wholly frightened. He’ll beat it out of the country straight off.
I know these chaps.”
“Did he take
the London
train?” Lyster asked, feeling less confident.
He did,
Redfern admitted. “I trailed him from the moment we landed. And Sydney is always on the
look-out for that. He’s no fool, and no novice. I’m convinced we’ll never have
such a chance at him again.”
Lyster shook
his head. “I’ve several reasons for letting him go now. We can’t afford to be
held up in London
at this time, perhaps for months, fooling about with extradition, partly
because we haven’t the time, more because the publicity of it would warn the
others. If they know we’re on their trail, to the extent of following them
abroad, our chances for taking them are slim. They’d avoid the only spots we
know to search for them. That girl gave us the only clues we have to go by, and
if we came out into the papers now they’d know what’s in for them.”
"But we
have to start with one some time,” Redfern grumbled, more than half convinced.
“I’m hoping,”
Lyster said, “that their association in America will bring them together
over there, and that we’ll be on hand at the meeting. Remember that Sydney has no cause, that
he knows of, to be frightened of me. That’s what I count on.”
“Then you and
I must separate again.”
“Certainly.
Until we’re through with Sydney .”
“My
inclination is to make a job as cheap as possible for my employer, and this
means uncertainty and loss of valuable time.”
“My one
consideration,” Lyster said, “is final success.”
They sat in
silence for a time, Redfern’s disquiet displayed by his habit of scratching his
cheek.
“We got to
keep this in mind,” Lyster went on. "We’re going to find ourselves in
countries none too kindly disposed toward the United States . There isn’t one of
them but would be able to do what Greece did with Insull and refuse
to hand our men over. Besides, we have to confess that we show too little
enthusiasm and success in convicting and punishing our own criminals to expect
other countries to do our work for us.”
Redfern
smiled. “You speak as an American.”
“I’m doing an
American job—for an American employer.”
“All right.
I’m content to let it run for a time to see how your plan works, but I’m afraid
you’re dreaming.”
“If I am I
hope I find it out soon enough to alter my plan. If I knew you were with me to
the end I’d feel safer.”
Redfern
grasped his hand without a word.
“I’ll put up
at the Regent Palace
in London ,”
Lyster said. “There are several entrances, to different streets. You’ll stop at
another hotel, but you can get to me without being seen. Call me up and I’ll
give you my room number.”
Redfern,
experienced detective that he was, knew his man. Sydney failed to keep the appointment at the
Corner House. Lyster, disturbed and not a little chagrined by this further
evidence of his associate’s superior wisdom, was for the moment inclined to
alter his plans immediately. But Redfern did not rub it in, and Lyster,
encouraged thereby, recovered some of his confidence.
“We’ll find
him.”
In their long
talks Sydney had mentioned a little Soho restaurant where he hoped to get some of his
favourite Italian dishes. His mouth watered for his beloved ravioli. Lyster
recalled the name of the restaurant, and for dinner next day visited it in the
hope that his quarry might not have been in too great a hurry to gratify his
craving.
He found it a
small place, with only half a dozen tables and two waiters. But the meal was
excellent, and Lyster lingered over it, betraying his satisfaction so frankly
that waiter and proprietor beamed on him.
He hoped that Sydney might appear.
Balked of that, he engaged the waiter in conversation.
“Your ravioli
is all it was described,” he declared.
“The gentleman
has heard of us?” the waiter asked, delighted.
“Indeed I
have. A friend of mine, coming over on the boat, spoke of you in glowing
terms.”
“We have a
reputation, sir,” the waiter glowed. "We use the real Italian recipes. You
notice the menu? Perhaps you missed the number of Italian cities mentioned.
Every city at home has its own special dish named after it. But it’s our
ravioli that brings us our patrons mostly.” He chuckled. “We had a man
yesterday—no, day before yesterday—he ordered four dishes of it and cleaned
them all up. Said he was making up for years of American food. I hope you’re
not American, sir?” apologetically.
Lyster’s ears
pricked up. “I’ve lived there, but I’m English born. . . . This man—he was here
day before yesterday, you say. I wonder—but it couldn’t be. I was wondering—but
it's absurd—if he’s the man who recommended you to me. We crossed together—just
reached England
day before yesterday. What did he look like?”
The waiter
considered. “He was a biggish chap, sort of rough-looking. I don’t mean he
wasn’t well dressed, but he looked as if he’d led a hard life.”
“Did you
notice his ears?”
“His ears?”
The waiter was puzzled.
“Were they
hairy?”
“Come to think
of it, I believe they were.”
“And did he
have a mole on his chin?”
The waiter
beamed. “That’s right. He did. I remember now.”
“That’s Sydney ,” Lyster exclaimed
“Sydney ? But this man was
certainly an Italian. He talked of Italy all the time. He was born
there—lived there until ten years ago, then he went to America . He was born not far from
my own native village. Chiavari, it was, a town on the coast between Genoa and Pisa .
I was born at Zoagli, the old home of velvet. They don’t do much there now—not
in velvet, I mean; the factories have cut out the house-looms.” He chattered
on, for the restaurant had emptied.
Lyster
listened, asked questions, and left a-tingle, after leaving a handsome tip.
Chiavari
blazed in the sun as Roland Lyster dropped from the train, and with the
assistance of a phrase-book found his way to an hotel. Fluent at French, he had
little knowledge of Italian, though he could gather its meaning in type.
He chose the
best hotel, situated on the main street, a half mile of over-hanging buildings
designed to protect the sidewalks from the summer sun. Great stone columns
between walk and roadway supported the projections, so that the shops were
dark, and pedestrians almost invisible from the passing traffic. Though it was
late December, the day was hot, the shade of the covered street not unwelcome.
The desk-clerk
saw the phrase-book and grinned. “Gosh, it’s good to see someone from dear ole
Lunnun.” Lyster did not smile. Even three years in America had failed to reconcile him
to such a wide familiarity. But he took the extended hand. He wondered, too,
that he retained so plainly the marks of his origin.
When the clerk
learned that his guest had lived in America he became more friendly.
“Lived there
twelve years myself,” he confided. “Worked in a restaurant on State Street in old
Chi. Came over during the war, and now I can’t get back. The town is full of
fellows in the same fix. Most of us got crocked up fighting for America
and her allies, but because we were away more than a year they wouldn’t let us
back. That’s gratitude for you. But we’re getting reconciled to it after
fifteen years. You won’t need a phrase-book in Chiavari. In any crowd there’ll
be someone who speaks English. How'd you come to strike this place?”
Lyster had but
one thought in mind—to find Sydney ,
and with difficulty he restrained himself from starting in immediately to ask
questions. But “Sydney ,”
he knew, was only a boat-name, and Toni had known him only as Dago George.
Besides, Chiavari was too small to hope to conceal his curiosity. It was small
enough, he concluded, to find Sydney ,
if he was there, by merely keeping his eye on the main street.
All that day
and the next he wandered about, window-shopping, visiting the churches, but
missing nothing about him. He drank chianti before outdoor cafés, and always
dined in public where he could watch the street. He was the curious tourist.
On the third
day he was strolling in the shade of the overhanging buildings, a little
discouraged, undecided what to do should he fail to locate his man. A window of
antiques attracted his attention, and he paused before it. A man passed behind
him, and he caught the reflection in the glass. In a moment, without so much as
looking around, he turned away and crossed the street to the other pavement.
Seating himself before a café, he called for café latta.
Through the
thick stone pillars he saw Sydney
enter a shop at the corner. A waiter filled a glass at his hand half with
coffee, half with milk, and Lyster raised it automatically to his lips. At that
moment Sydney
emerged, and Lyster, setting down the glass, dropped a two-lire piece on the
table and departed.
The end of his
quest had come so unexpectedly that he was unprepared for it. All he could
think of was that he must not lose sight of his man, now that he had found him
again. As he crossed the street he was held up for several seconds by a team of
slow-moving oxen, and he grated his teeth. To run ahead would attract
attention, and all he could do was wait.
At that moment
a motor horn blared furious warning, and he looked around to see a large open
car, with a “G.B.” above the licence plate, bearing down on him. He stepped
back, and as it passed he leaped to the running-board. The driver, a young man,
hatless and fair-haired, turned to stare at him. Beyond him a pretty girl
looked surprised but not protestant.
“What the
devil!”
Lyster opened
the rear door. “As a fellow- countryman,” he pleaded hurriedly, “give me a lift
for a moment. I’ll explain.”
The excitement
of his manner, his obvious seriousness, had its immediate effect.
“Help
yourself,” said the girl. “This is my car, Jack, you know,” as her companion
seemed about to protest. “Now what’s your special trouble? Mussolini?”
“There’s a man
gone up the street there,” Lyster explained, “and I want him badly.”
“Want me to
run him down—in a strange land?” the young man laughed. “Who’d he murder?”
“He was with a
gang that did commit murder,” Lyster told him. “And he locked half a dozen of
us in a vault to smother to death.”
“Good Lord!
All right, if the curb’s not too high I can manufacture an accident. Where is
he?” He pressed the accelerator.
But the answer
was not forthcoming. Sydney
had vanished. They could see along both sides of the street now, and Sydney was not in sight.
“He’s gone
again,” Lyster murmured miserably.
“Well, you
can’t lose him in a village this size. I’ll run up and down the street for a
month if you say so. We’re sure to catch him at a crossing some time. You stick
to us. Marjorie and I were on the way to Florence
by way of Pisa ,
but what’s a leaning tower to the nice fresh corpse of a murderer?”
Lyster
laughed. It was his first real laugh since leaving New York , and he felt better for it.
“No,” he said,
“this is too serious to bring strangers into it. But you don’t know how it
bucks me up to know we Britishers can yet stick together.” He opened the door.
“Trot along to your leaning tower. You’ll probably be dizzy—and disappointed.
An oddity in a cornfield—and the dullest of towns. Thanks awfully, old chap.
And,” with a laugh, “I haven’t permitted myself to say that for three years.”
The car pulled
to a stop, and Lyster, with a deep bow to Marjorie, dropped to the roadway. He
felt brighter, more confident, brisker. He returned straightway to the shop he
had seen Sydney
enter, but when he found himself inside he felt helpless. He fumbled for his
phrase-book, but a phrase-book is noted for the number of things it contains
that no one wishes to say, and the number it lacks that one cannot get along
without.
A man came
forward and with a laugh pointed to the little book. “Say it in English,” he
advised in perfect English. “I’m one of the thousands of unfortunates stranded
in Italy because we fought
on the same side as America .”
Lyster felt like
throwing his arms about the man’s neck.
“I was passing
in a car a few minutes ago,” he said, a little breathlessly, “and I saw a man
leaving your store that I used to know. He looked like a man I met on board
ship a week or so ago. I’d have got out, but I was with friends who were in a
hurry.”
“That would be
Giuseppi—Giuseppi Anselmi. He’s just back from America on a visit.”
“Is he staying
here—in the town?”
“He lives
here. At least, his mother does. Giuseppi was born here. He wasn’t in the war;
he was lucky—too young.”
“Where does
his mother live?"
The man told
him. Lyster thanked him and went. He decided that he could not draw back now—no
half-way measures. To act with boldness was best and safest. He made straight
for Giuseppi Anselmi's mother’s home.
A block behind
him a man in a soft hat pulled well down over his eyes kept pace with him.
Chapter XI Flight
As Roland
Lyster followed the directions he had received he began to realize the task he
had set himself. He needed none of Hornbaker’s inflexible determination to hold
him to his task, but these operations in foreign lands offered special perils,
not so much to himself as to his purpose. He was not up on international law,
and he knew how consuls the world over dislike the diplomatic complications that
arise from their nationals making themselves conspicuous by infringing the
local laws, even innocently. And consuls the world over look on their jobs as
well-salaried sinecures not to be agitated by incidents that alone justify
their position. Besides, the impossibility of providing in advance for the
difficulties that were bound to crop up in the chase made of every incident an
emergency for Lyster.
He began to
wonder if he was not taking too much on himself and leaving too little to
Redfern, the professional.
It was not
that he anticipated any immediate embarrassment in meeting Sydney
again, but he had no way of foreseeing what Sydney would do to block or assist him in the
end. The Italian would not suspect him, in spite of the unpleasant incident
that had marked their last meeting on the boat, but Lyster was not so certain
that he could satisfy his quarry concerning a visit to such an unfrequented
town as Chiavari.
There was no
alternative, however, to renewing their acquaintance in order to maintain contact.
The Anselmi
home was a typical Italian house of the lower middle class. A high stone wall
extended across its front, with a heavy iron gate that opened on a flagstone
walk. Through the gate he could see an orchard of orange trees, and grape vines
were trained over a trellis. The wall was overgrown with heliotrope, a curtain
of colour that rose as well over one side of a summer-house perched on the wall
beside the gate and reached by a flight of wooden steps.
So peaceful it
looked, so calmly isolated, that Lyster felt his heart sicken for his task. The
house was well cared for, a bower of green, with spots of yellow oranges
gleaming through the leaves. On the covered platform over the gate were two
cane chairs, and before the door was another pair. Potted plants lined the
steps to the summer-house. Two lizards chased themselves over the rough wall in
the sun. A cat lay basking on a window-sill.
Lyster tore
himself away. He could envision the mother, gentle, kindly, friendly Northern
Italian, so different from the Sicilians and Neapolitans that made up the
Italians America knew, the foundation for so much misunderstanding of the Latin
nation. Yet there were exceptions, Giuseppi for one.
Lyster turned
and walked back to the gate. And as he walked he saw Hutton’s crumpled body and
the blood on Shirley Cringan’s hand—the stain on the ring he carried at that
moment in his pocket.
Those high
stone walls, too, and those iron gates, locked, of course—in them was a story
of a life that differed from his conception of the Northern Italian.
Lawlessness there, too.
He found the
gate locked, as he expected. The bell-wire hung down the side of the wall, and
when he pulled it a small black-and-white terrier dashed from the house with a
shrill outcry that made further summons redundant. It slithered to a stop just
through the iron bars and continued to bark.
A chair
scraped beyond the open door, and a small, old woman appeared, wiping her hands
on her apron. Old as she was, she carried herself erect, with the poise of the
woman who has borne her burdens on her head, the carriage of the queen among
peasants.
“Buon’ giorno,” she murmured, in a soft
voice.
Lyster
mustered a stumbling reply, and her face wrinkled understandingly.
“You no spik
Italiano,” she said. “I spik Eengleesh. She took a huge iron key from the
door-jamb and trotted down the flagged walk, the sunlight flickering dizzily on
her through the leaves as she came.
"I'm glad
of that," Lyster said. "We can get along better in English. I was
wanting to see your son,” he said, as she hesitated inside the gate, with the
key in the lock. “I happened to see him on the street to-day, I think. I met
him on the boat coming across.”
The old woman
unlocked the gate, smiling and excited. “Giuseppi?” she asked, and her tone trembled
with affection. “My Giuseppi come home few days. I learn Eengleesh when
Giuseppi over there, so maybe I go some day. I call him. He sleeps! Come een,
per piacere—plees.”
The terrier
smelled doubtfully at Lyster’s leg, but decided it was none of his business and
trotted back to lie in the sun. The woman directed the visitor to one of the
wicker chairs before the door and went inside.
Lyster sat
where she had left him, strangely upset, uncertain of himself, the peaceful
scene tugged at his heart, the mother’s crying affection. The terrier lay
watching him, this stranger from a foreign land, distrustful, unfriendly, but
remote. The cat, irresponsible, rose from the sill, stretched itself, and,
leaping to the flags, came to rub itself against Lyster’s ankles. Lyster
stooped to fondle it.
A window
opened softly over his head, and Lyster, looking up, caught a glimpse of Sydney ’s retiring face.
“Hello,
Syd—Anselmi! What luck! I happened to see you in town—”
“Hello,
Halton!” Sydney ’s
head reappeared, none too welcoming. “I’ll come down.” The window dropped.
In a few
minutes Sydney
appeared in the doorway, a chill, speculative, somewhat suspicious look in his
eye.
“How the devil
did you run across me here?”
Lyster told
the story he had prepared. “This is a small world, isn’t it, Sydney ? It’s funny how—”
“Better call
me by my right name around here,” Sydney
warned.
"Sure.
You didn’t keep our lunch engagement at the Corner House. I was disappointed.”
“No.” Sydney took a long time
lighting a cigar; he did not offer Lyster one. “When I found myself so near
home I couldn’t wait: I just cut for Chiavari. Where are you going?”
“Nowhere in
particular.” Lyster shrugged. “So long as I can keep out of the way of certain
people, I’m enjoying myself—comparatively. This place is out of the tourist
track. That suits me—for a while.” “But how did you come to stop off here?” Sydney was not satisfied.
“I heard
something about it in Genoa .
I’ve a girl with expensive tastes. One of them is lace and linens. You’ve got
them here better than anywhere else in Europe ,
I’m told. I missed out on that diamond. By the way, did you ever find it?”
“Not a chance.
That thief Redfern got his hands on it for good. I only hope I meet up with him
soon.”
“He looked
like a nasty man to cross,” Lyster warned. “There isn’t much he wouldn’t do to
get a fellow into trouble, I’d say.”
“If I run
across him he won’t have a chance to get anyone into trouble again.”
The old mother
appeared in the doorway, smiling blandly on them. She addressed her son in
Italian, and Sydney
hesitated.
“She wants you
to stay to supper,” he told Lyster. “You won’t get what you’re used to—”
“Thank you and
her, no. I’m paying for my meals at the hotel, whether I eat them or not. But
I’d like you to come down and dine with me to-night.” For a moment he fought
with himself. “If your mother would come, too, I’d be delighted.” It burst from
him, in spite of a crowding terror that the invitation would be accepted, for
he had an old-fashioned respect for the claims of one who had broken bread as
his guest.
But Sydney ’s reply was prompt
enough. “No, she wouldn’t like it.” He said something laughingly to his mother
in Italian, and the old woman smiled at Lyster and returned to the house after
a friendly "riverderci! You come
again."
“The old woman
wouldn’t like it if I ate out, Sydney
said. “I’ll just hang around here as long as I’m in Chiavari.”
“Are you
thinking of leaving soon?” Lyster asked, relieved by the man’s refusal, but
disturbed by the prospect of further wandering that could only complicate his
plan.
They had
reached the main street and turned into the shade of the projecting buildings.
The traffic of the roadway, from ox-carts to the grandest automobiles, most of
the latter containing tourists passing through from Genoa
toward the Riviera ,
was oddly excluded by the intermittent pillars supporting the projecting
structures overhead. Lyster began to realize that he had reached an impasse. If
Sydney left
Chiavari how could he hope to keep in touch with him without exciting
suspicion? And if he remained he had a shrewd suspicion that Mussolini would be
hard to convince that he should give Sydney
up.
To gain time
to think, Lyster drew up before a window in which an elaborate lace bed-spread
was on display, and Sydney
stood waiting, slightly amused.
“Betcha a
fiver your girl wouldn’t know the difference between Chiavari lace and—”
Lyster turned
at the sudden silence, to see Sydney
creeping along the wall. He stared, and as Sydney started swiftly away he followed,
completely puzzled. Around the first corner they went, Sydney still several paces ahead.
“Sydney ! Sydney ! What’s the hurry? I thought we were—”
“Oh, I’m that
way,” he laughed. “You were more interested in a bit of lace. I was tired
waiting. But it’s later than I thought. Mother’ll be waiting supper for me.
Good-bye.” He walked abruptly away.
“Don’t forget
to-morrow,” Lyster called. “I must taste some of the real native wine. You
promised.”
Lyster sighed.
“That did it. He saw you.”
“It’s too big
a job for any man to keep out of sight in this town of a fellow like Sydney , who’s always
looking for trouble. It’s so dark under these buildings—and I didn’t see you’d
stopped until I was almost on you.” He drew up to examine himself in a store
window. “I thought this make-up might pass. I see I must be more careful. I’ll
clear out now. I'll make for Rapallo —the
Savoia Hotel. You’ll have to keep him in sight yourself until this scare wears
off."
But Sydney was already out of
sight. Next day he did not keep their appointment, and Lyster, calling at his
home, was told that he had gone away.
“Just a little
visit to Florence ,”
his mother said. “He won’t be long.” And from its wording Lyster knew it was a
message passed on from her son.
A wire to
Redfern brought him back and they set out for Florence ; there was nowhere else to go. But
two weeks of persistent search failed to find the man they sought.
The pair put
their heads together, but they could think of nothing except that Sydney , frankly suspicious
and frightened of Redfern, and now eluding Lyster as well, introduced a new and
complicated problem.
It was then
that Lyster thought of Monte Carlo .
Chapter XII At Monte Carlo
BRUCE
REDFERN’S experience in the criminal world was wide and his reputation excellent,
but in the pursuit of the gang that had brought on itself the vendetta of
Nathan Hornbaker he had often thus far found himself at a loss. He was to find
himself in greater and more threatening dilemmas before the chase was finished.
Accustomed to
planning his own campaigns, he found it difficult to mould his ideas to
Lyster’s. The result was an unwonted succession of emergencies for which he was
not prepared. It did not do him justice, and he worried under it.
Lyster’s plan
was not his from the first, and the very fact that it fitted in neither to his
conception of success nor of economy irritated him, and at times made him
difficult to work with. To see known criminals going their way when they might
have been arrested with more assurance of success, as he thought, and great
saving of expense decreased at times his own effectiveness.
Lyster’s
suggestion of Monte Carlo ,
therefore, he seized with the eagerness of one who had no clues of his own. Sydney ’s gambling
proclivities, added to his enthusiastic approval of the resort to Lyster,
inclined him to think the suggestion worth more than some others of his
companion’s.
“But,” he
warned, “we’re up against a new condition with Sydney . I must not only keep under cover, but
he suspects me now of disguise and of pursuing him . . . and I don’t see how
you’re going to make contact without establishing a suspicion that must already
be in his mind. Don’t forget, too, that the man’s desperate.”
That, indeed,
worried him not a little—that the dangerous work must, in this case, be taken
from his shoulders and placed on another’s.
But Roland
Lyster was not without a plan, and without consulting Redfern he set about
putting it into operation.
It was one of
the French Riviera’s few winter rainy days when he and Redfern alighted at
Mentone. In separate taxis, a couple of hours apart, they motored to Monte Carlo , putting up at
different hotels. Lyster chose the Hôtel de Paris, sending Redfern to another
close by. Sydney
was not likely to appear in either, and they were close enough to keep in touch
and get together at a moment’s notice.
Securing a
room overlooking the entrance to the Casino, Lyster set himself to watch the
stream of gamblers entering and leaving. For an afternoon and a morning Sydney did not appear, or
if he did he was submerged in the crowds. At lunch, served in his room, Lyster
discussed it with Redfern.
It was then
that the experience and patience of the trained detective came to the fore. He
was not depressed. Standing at the window, he watched the milling crowd
dropping down the Casino steps and hurrying to lunch, some stopping at the
café. It required no experience to pick out the habitues. The open space before
the Café de Paris was black with diners.
“There are
five hundred in sight all the time at these hours,” he encouraged. “It’s
humanly impossible to be certain of noticing them all. Are there not, too,
other entrances?” He paced the length of the room and back. “I hate to advise
it, but the only thing I see is for you to visit the gambling-rooms. You must
take the chance. Monte Carlo is on the usual route of the wanderer, as you’re
supposed to be; so that even if he sees you it may be all right. I’m out of the
question. I’m sorry, but—”
“Why sorry?”
Lyster asked.
“Because
there’s danger in it. I mean physical danger. No, not right there in the
Casino, but Sydney 's
the sort of man that if he is convinced you’re trailing him will do something
desperate. And I don’t think you’re competent to anticipate his deviltries.
He’d get you out somewhere and kill you—just like that.” He snapped his
fingers.
Lyster smiled.
“Are you jealous? Do you think I came on this chase without some sense of the
character of these men? Your turn will come, Redfern Sydney happens, by force
of circumstances, to be my meat."
He sat for
some time thinking. He was not satisfied. He was not sure that his plan might
not be advanced by Redfern exposing himself.
“Suppose he
sees me?” he said.
“That’s a risk
we must take. You'll have to act according to the emergency that arises. I’m
reluctant to throw this on you, Lyster, but I see no other way. If you wish,
it’s always easy to escape in that crowd. The rooms will be packed. My own
impression, from what I know of Sydney ,
is that he’ll be too deeply absorbed in the tables to notice anyone.
Lyster waited
for the busiest hour, about half-past three, before purchasing his entrance
ticket. "The kitchen,” the first and cheaper gambling section, was so
crowded that he felt his heart sink. He could scarcely advance between the
tables, and among those hundreds Sydney
might well escape him. A cruise-boat had arrived, and the half thousand
passengers had flocked to the tables. All about him he heard the familiar
American voice, made more audible by the excitement and the strangeness of the
scene.
Slowly he made
his way among the tables, eyeing their groups in detail, striving to conceal
his interest. His beard had grown by this time to a neatly-trimmed wedge, so
that he had no fear of being recognized by anyone but Sydney .
At a table in
the south room, called into use only for the afternoon crowds, he found the man
he sought.
Lyster had
been twice to Monte Carlo
before, taken there during the Christmas holidays by his pleasure-loving
mother, so that the scene was not new to him. He recognized immediately that Sydney was working a
“system.” He saw, too, that the odds of his system, playing transversal simple,
were too small to mean anything but that the man’s funds were low. Sydney was a plunger. His
bloodshot eyes and nervous mien verified the suspicion.
For a few
turns of the wheel Lyster watched, then, having learned what he came for, he
retired. Redfern immediately took up the trail, this time carefully disguised.
So that when Sydney
left the Casino at six o’clock an awkward-looking, absent-minded professor was
not far behind him. Mingling with the emerging crowd, Sydney passed around to the terrace and
dropped down the long flight of stairs toward the station, from there climbing
to a small hotel in Beausoleil.
Redfern
returned to the Hôtel de Paris. “And now what?” He was impatient, throwing the
responsibility on Lyster’s shoulders.
Lyster had
little to say. In his own mind he had to confess that their repeated good
fortune gave no promise of final success. Sydney
could go about his business in Monte
Carlo in the open and snap his fingers in their faces.
“We must keep in
touch with him,” he replied lamely. “Something is bound to turn up.”
“There was a
character in Dickens like that,” Redfern retorted in some disgust. “Don’t you
think you’d better come clean about this wonderful plan of yours? If I’m to
help, it looks nothing but reasonable that I should know my part.”
Lyster
explained. His idea was, he said, to keep in contact with their quarry until he
returned to America .
That he was bound to do sooner or later. Nothing in Europe would satisfy him
after a lifetime in the United
States .
“And so we’re
to make a life job of it? Not I.”
“Then we must
do something to hasten their return.”
“How? The plan
is admirable—if it works. What can I do?”
Lyster
squirmed. “I’m working on that. Give me a day or two. Between us we can surely
think of some way.”
Next afternoon
Lyster again visited the Casino. The crowd was not so great, for the
cruise-boat was gone to the next hectic shore amusement, but there were
gamblers and spectators enough to make him feel safe.
He found Sydney in the same chair
at the same table. The crowd at his back was so thick that it was several
minutes before Lyster could get more than a glimpse of his rounded shoulders
and one hairy ear. For a better view he worked around the end of the table. One
of the players seated beside the croupier at that end rose in disgust, cleaned
out, and pushed through the crowd, leaving a temporary view of Sydney ’s side of the
table.
Lyster took
one look and dropped abruptly away and fled.
Redfern was
not in his room where he had left him, but the telephone brought him from his
hotel on the run. Lyster met him at the door and clutched his arm. His face was
flushed with excitement.
“God, Redfern!
What luck! Frenchy is there with him! They’re playing together, Sydney and he!”
“Did you see
Frenchy? How would you recognize him?”
Lyster smiled.
“I couldn’t mistake those ears—protruding, with wide lobes. A mask never covers
the ears. It was the ears of the gang I fixed in my mind that night. Besides, I
recognize his manner of holding himself, and a habit he has of jerking his
head.”
Redfern leaped
to action. “Cut across there again and keep them in sight till I join you. I’ll
be there in fifteen minutes.”
Lyster hurried
back to the Casino. The pair were still at the table, Sydney red-eyed and
intent, Frenchy fidgety and bad-tempered. Sydney ,
it was plain, was gambling with Frenchy’s money, too—and losing. Lyster kept
them in sight. In half an hour an elderly man, with bent shoulders and
eye-glasses, strolled into the room and looked contemptuously about. As he
passed Lyster he pinched his arm.
Lyster left
the Casino. The elderly man remained.
Chapter XIII An Unexpected Meeting
“THERE’S
something in the air, Lyster, and when a pair like that get their heads
together it’s a dirty sign. They have long confabs in Sydney ’s room, but I can hear only a word now
and then. I’m afraid the clerk suspects I had a reason for insisting on the
next room.
Redfern and
Lyster were talking it over in the latter’s quarters. He had changed his room
to a corner one, where he could see the door of the Casino, the Café de Paris,
the Mediterranean , and a bit of the terrace
that, in the morning, was always thronged Redfern was in his old-man disguise,
which he kept in Lyster’s room to avoid unpleasant inquiries in his own hotel.
The detective
lolled in one of the easy-chairs, eyeing Lyster with some impatience. The
latter had taken his stand before the window over the water, a view of which he
never tired. The sea glistened in the sun, shafts of shifting light against a
background of brilliant blue. The Côte d’Azur . A yacht race was in
progress, the line of white-winged butterflies leaning before the wind.
“We don’t need
to worry,” Lyster said, "as long as they’re content to stay in Monte Carlo ."
“But what good
does that do us?"
“Something
will turn up—we’ll find a way out. Time plays into our hands more than into
theirs. In a few days they’ll be penniless.”
“Then what?”
“They’ll make
for the one country where they know how to make easy money.”
“And how will
they get there—without money?” No answer forthcoming, he continued. “No, I’ll
tell you what will happen: we’ll never have a chance to lay hands on them.”
“Why not?”
“Lawlessness
gets short shift in Monte Carlo .
The Casino can stand anything but that.”
Lyster asked
nervously: “What do you mean?”
“That Sydney and Frenchy will
try other means of making money—and that will end our game. There’s too much
money about this place for them to go straight for long, even if they don’t
lose at the tables. But every franc that comes to Monte Carlo belongs to the Casino—or they
think it does. The first move these crooks make to clean someone out they’ll
find themselves in jail for life, or thereabouts. . . . If they had their
choice I’m sure they’d prefer American justice to the Casino’s.”
“Do you think
we might—” Lyster saw the twinkle in the detective’s eyes. “All right, then we
must keep them out of a Monaco
prison.”
Redfern
scoffed. “Can a leopard change his spots?”
Lyster was
back at the window again, his eyes unfocused, thinking hard. “Couldn’t we
frighten them away—somehow?”
“Of course. I
might introduce myself. They’d be sure to skip out—and leave us cold. But
sooner or later these scamps are bound to get up against the law and when they
do we might as well bid them good-bye. I’m afraid the United States and its law
enforcement has roused an unfortunate appetite in them. There are so many ways
to make a living out there—most of them shady.”
Lyster
couldn’t face it. “There’s another tourist boat dropping anchor off the
harbour, he said inanely. “It’s the picture I like best to look at in all Monte Carlo . There must be
another in, too; I heard a strange whistle early this morning. The crowds, too,
prove it.”
Redfern had
seen it. “It’s hidden from here by the Casino—a big white boat. Well, I must
get on my job again. I’m getting a permanent quaver in my voice with this
disguise. But I warn you, Lyster, Sydney
and Frenchy have something on their mind; they’re up to some deviltry. Between
their losses at roulette and this plot they’re discussing they have some hot
words. I only hope it doesn’t break into too hot a flame before we’re through
with them. Anyone can see they hate the sight of each other, but a common past,
criminal association, binds them together. I'm off. And you’d better get some
exercise. I’ll have you sick on my hands if you sit all day at these windows.
Try a climb to La Turbie. It might clear your head."
Lyster ignored
the hint in the detective’s final words. He did not climb to La Turbie.
Instead, something drew him to the terrace, where the usual mid-forenoon crowd
was airing itself and its foibles—actresses and their outlandish pets, old men
and women with cats and dogs on leash, a woman in white with a parakeet on her
shoulder, badly-dressed English women, garrulous Americans settling the woes of
the world for the public to hear, demure French damsels with an eye to the easy
mark, dusky Italians; officers of two nations, the French heavily gilded, the
Italian with high grey caps and natty caped uniforms; Algerian rug-peddlars,
bulgy-necked Germans.
Roland Lyster
was not interested. He leaned on the stone railing and looked out over the most
beautiful waterscape in the world. The yacht race was over, but the yachts lay
at anchor like butterflies on a bank of flowers. Two great steamships were
anchored off-shore. Against the towering white side of the larger hugged a
little steam tender, and Lyster could see the passengers crowding into her for
a day ashore. The other tourist boat, rebelling against the exorbitant fees asked
by the tender—owned by the Casino, as is everything else in Monaco operated at a profit—was
sending its passengers ashore in its own boats.
As the tender
started toward the harbour Lyster detached himself from the railing and set out
more or less aimlessly for the wharf. Taking his stand on a landing of the
winding stair that dropped from the upper road to the wharf, he watched the
passengers come ashore. Americans, of course. He recognized them by their eager
manner, their unrestrained greetings and banter, their contagious acceptance of
Monte Carlo as
a creation for their special amusement.
Suddenly he
started, almost losing his balance. Then, three steps at a time, he plunged
downward, almost upsetting two men he passed on the way and bringing on his
unobservant head the maledictions of an old woman who aimed a blow at him with
her umbrella. A long line of taxis was drawn up on the wharf, and a group of
three was climbing into one when Lyster rushed up to them.
“Well!” he
exclaimed, choking for words, extending his hand to a lovely young girl who,
turning her head ever so little, eyed him coldly.
“I think,” she
said, “you’ve made a mistake,” and lifted her foot to the running-board.
The man of the
party, already seated in the taxi, thrust his head out. “What do you
want?"
Lyster’s face
paled. Bewildered, he stepped back, his hand still extended. “ I—beg—your
pardon, ’ he murmured.
The lips of
the girl parted, and her eyes widened.
“Why—mumsie—if
it isn’t Mr. Lyster!”
Only then did
Lyster remember his disguising beard. “Another moment and I’d have doubted it
myself, Miss Cringan,” he laughed. “How are you, Mrs. Cringan—and Mr. Cringan?
I’d forgotten my adornment. Please tell me what you think of it."
“Mr. Lyster,”
Shirley replied solemnly, “you’re a changed man.”
“Which, you’ll
agree, is all to the good,” he returned. “But what are you doing here?”
Shirley waved
a despairing hand. “Don’t ask that or there’ll be another change of itinerary.
You remember the one we laid out? Well, it's been so useful to daddy—to tell
him where he didn’t wish to go. The Cringans are like that—strong, independent,
born of the soil, and all that. And now that we’ve told you everything,
everything, give us a chance. What are you
doing here? Have you taken that last desperate step we discussed, and broken
away from uncle’s apron-strings? Have you a system to break the bank of Monte Carlo ? Have your
ambitions climbed to that lofty pinnacle?”
“Perhaps,” her
mother broke in, “Mr. Lyster doesn’t wish to tell all he knows in one breath.”
“He’s been two
years telling it to Uncle Nathan, and at the last reports he was still going
strong. Such a widely-informed young man!”
Lyster ached
to hit back, but for the life of him he couldn’t think of anything that fitted
the case. He was always thus with Shirley.
“You’ll be at
the Casino later, Mrs. Cringan,” he said, ignoring her daughter. “I’ll see you
then. You’re driving along the Grande Corniche, of course. All tourists do.”
He was moving
away when Shirley stopped him. “Perhaps you were going to invite us to dine at
the Café de Paris,” she suggested dryly. “Don’t let us interfere with your
plans.”
“I had thought
of the Hôtel de Paris,” he said. Shirley frowned. “Beggars can’t be choosers,
of course, but I’ve dreamed of the open before the café. Shall we say the café,
then?”
“I’m afraid
not. I’ve engaged a table at the hotel.” Lyster had no thought of exposing
himself to discovery by Sydney
by eating in the open anywhere. “I would strongly recommend the hotel.”
“And I would
strongly recommend the café, and since we originated the invitation—even at
your expense—But, I see: your system at the tables doesn’t permit entertaining
friends, even old friends. The alternative is that you be our guest.”
Lyster looked
straight into her eyes. “There are some things you have yet to learn, Miss
Cringan—such simple things as the relative cost of dining at the café and at
the hotel. But I see the line is waiting to start. Ask for me at the hotel,
please, when you return.” He lifted his hat and started away. “By the way” he
turned back to call it at them—“ask for Mr. Simpson, Mr. Jasper Simpson.”
He had reached
the foot of the steps when his arm was caught from behind, and he looked around
into Shirley’s flushed cheeks.
“Plainly you
need a chaperon, Mr. Lyster. ‘Jasper Simpson,’ forsooth! No, don’t worry about
me. Mumsie and daddy were quite content to go without me. I’ve been a bore, I
guess and you see the reputation you have for stodgy trustworthiness. It isn’t
many men they’d entrust me to—being what I am. I can only gather they were gay
young sparks themselves in their youth. Those whiskers just breathe stability
and sobriety and stodginess.”
Lyster looked
her over in some alarm. For the life of him he had no idea what to do with her.
“Monte Carlo
is no place for a real lady alone,” she said demurely, linking her arm in his.
“I feel like a plucked pigeon in all this gilded vice.”
“I notice how
the Americans take to it,” he said. She retorted: “What do you know about the
Americans? You’ve been there only three years. We talk about the great American
melting-pot for Poles and Italians and Hungarians and other outlandish people.
I suppose it’s because we know a melting-pot isn’t hot enough to melt the
English.”
“We
encountered the flux of that melting-pot on a certain night a few weeks ago at
your uncle’s.” She winced elaborately. “Either you’ve developed an art since we
last met, or I’ve become more intelligent and notice it. Or perhaps it's just
plain stupidity—I’ve lost the knack of dodging. By the way, we’re leaving the
boat here.”
“Then the trip
around the world is off?”
“Definitely.
It was never really on. I warned you. Daddy, you may have observed, is a
genius. Temperament, you know, temperament. He still thinks, more than ever I
may say, that he sees his Great Chance. . . . So we’re going to settle down at
Collioure.”
“Where’s
Collioure?”
She shrugged
her pretty shoulders. “Does it matter? Your guess is as good as mine. We heard
about it on the boat. It’s somewhere in France —not far, I heard someone say
vaguely, from the Spanish border. What an inspiration to Art—the influence of
two nations steeped in Art—even if it’s bull-fighting in one and the making of
wine—and money—in the other. I warned you it would happen. In Collioure, it
seems, Art flourishes like a bad weed—no fertilizing, no cultivation, no
watering. It’s the soil—or the air. That and a lot of back-scratching from
kindred spirits. Oh, well, let’s forget it. Whence the ‘Simpson’?”
“I told you
what I was going to do, Miss Cringan. I’m doing it.”
She stopped on
the stairs above him and looked down on him. “The bloodhound?”
“You might
call it that.”
She climbed
on. “And,” she murmured over her shoulder, “the fact that you’re still the
Roland Lyster of vague dreams and dreamy ambitions proves that the job is—just
another job. You’ve been— let’s see—two months and a half on it. May I ask what
you’ve accomplished—besides winning for yourself a pleasant, luxurious holiday
at uncle’s expense?”
They had
reached the sloping road that rounded toward the Casino. He drew up beside her,
and without a word dropped into her hand the diamond ring Toni Pensa had torn
from her finger.
“Oh!” she
murmured, and was silent.
Chapter XIV At The Casino
THE afternoon
“séance” at the Casino had not yet begun. Out in the main room of “the kitchen”
three roulette tables played sleepily. At Number 2, “the suicides’ table,” four
chairs were empty. In the side-rooms the extra tables were being prepared for
the afternoon crowd.
A young lady
entered and conferred for a few moments in imperfect French with an attendant,
and a fifty-franc note exchanged hands. A few moments later a small white
square lay on the table before a certain chair. Before the two to the right lay
other white squares. The young lady wandered about the outer room.
In twenty
minutes every chair in the larger room was occupied, and the side-rooms had
begun to fill. Sydney
and Frenchy hurried in, picked up two of the white squares, and sat down. Most
of the other chairs filled almost immediately, and a small crowd gathered in
the rear. At the first call of “faites vos jeux, messieurs” the young lady
worked her way through the crowd and dropped into the empty chair with the
remaining white square before it. She did not glance at her neighbours.
She commenced
to play, hesitatingly, fussily, mussily. Placing a mise on a number, she removed it in a panic as the croupier called
“rien ne va plus,” and sat ogling the
jumping marble.
Losses raked
in and winnings thrown across the table, the game proceeded. “Faites vos jeux, messieurs.” The girl
placed a white disc, and as the croupier called to stop the play she grabbed a
red disc from the table and sat back.
“Here, here,
miss!” Frenchy, her neighbour on the right, protested. “That’s mine! You’ve got
my chip. Say, mister,” to the chef, “she’s taken my chip.”
The chef
looked coldly from one to the other. The young woman stiffened indignantly.
“Excuse me,” she said, and stilled Frenchy’s protest with a look.
But he
continued to grumble, and Sydney ,
on his right, threw the girl a murderous glare. The game proceeded. The young
woman played a few more turns and withdrew. She had lost every time.
Next morning Sydney and Frenchy secured
their usual places with the opening of the door, but in the main room, since
the side-rooms were open only in the afternoon. Across the table the same girl
faced them, fumbling her chips as usual, placing several and withdrawing them.
A pile of Sydney ’s
won, but the girl gathered in the winnings so quickly that she had them in her
hand before the two men could intercept her.
This time they
made a determined howl. Frenchy stormed to his feet, his face red with rage.
“She’s a thief!” he shouted. “That’s the second time she’s done it. She goes
around stealin’ chips. Why don’t you stop it?”
But his very
noise defeated his purpose. A corps of attendants swarmed about him from
nowhere and he found himself hustled away. Sydney followed. They met in the lobby.
“The damned
thief!” Sydney
snarled. “But what’s the use? They’ll play up to a skirt every time, these
crooked croupiers. We got to keep away from her. But when I get the chance—” He
ground his teeth.
The girl
passed, making for the front door. Sydney
edged up beside her.
“You'll play
that game once too often, miss,” he threatened.
The girl
looked through him without a word and continued her way. Frenchy scowled after
her.
“What the
hell’s it mean? Looks to me’s if she’s playin’ us for suckers.”
They had taken
their stand near one of the marble pillars. Both were in a vile temper.
“I’m clearin’
out,” Frenchy said. “You hand over my split, Dago George, and I’ll pull out for
Banyuls. I’m scared of things—I’m scared of everything. We ain’t got out of
that Hornbaker job yet, not by a damn sight! I’m safe in Banyuls—among friends,
too. Nobody’d think of lookin’ for me in my old home town. If you guys had
split fair what Toni and The Skunk got from that vault I’d be sittin’ pretty
for the rest of my life. Oh, you didn’t fool me—”
“Oh, yeah?
Don’t try to pull my leg. You frisked Toni clean, too, you and The Skunk. I
seen it—but I didn’t get a damn cent of that!” He glared at Sydney, who made a
futile gesture with his hands and moved toward the cloak-counter.
They handed
over their checks. An attendant disappeared and in a moment returned with their
hats. In the band of Sydney ’s
was thrust an envelope. Sydney
jerked it out.
“What’s this?”
“It was left
for you,” said the attendant in English.
“What d’you
think of this?” he snarled, handing the note to Frenchy.
The latter
read and, lifting his head, cast a frightened glance about the lobby.
“Me,” he said
in a loud whisper, “I’m pullin’ out. But you got to come across with a couple
of grand or there’ll be trouble. It’s not half what’s comin’ to me, neither;
but I’ll call it square.”
“I tell you I
didn’t get more’n my share,” Sydney
growled. “Besides, I’ve lost it all in this damned place! You’ve got plenty.”
“You
double-crossed me, you did,” Frenchy insisted. “Yer a damned liar!”
Frenchy
sneered. “Sure. Doin’ a stretch in Monte
Carlo don’t look none too good, does it?”
“You ask Toni
or The Skunk if we weren’t on the level,” Sydney
said, choking back his anger.
“Yeah, and
Toni dead, and The Skunk vamoosed. You
can skip all over the country and burn the jack, you can. I can’t afford it.”
“You can if
you’ve got the guts,” Sydney
declared. He seized the other’s arm. “You come in on that little job to-night,
then we can clear out.”
They
disappeared through the main door. From behind a pillar a man who looked like
an absent- minded professor stepped out. He went straight to the Hôtel de
Paris.
In the lounge
a young woman sat nursing a swinging foot. The professor approached and bowed.
“If you’ll
come up with me to Mr. Lyster’s room, Miss Cringan,” he said in a low voice,
“you won’t have to wait. Oh, I forgot to introduce myself. I’m Professor
Mitchell, alias Redfern. My name-in-character will get me upstairs without
delay.”
In Lyster’s
room Shirley opened her purse. “Here’s seventy francs that isn’t mine. But if
you had your deserts you’d be arrested for receiving stolen goods. I’m not sure
if it’s Dago George’s or Frenchy’s. I could make an easy living at the roulette
tables, but I’m through. I couldn’t work it again, because they’d never play at
a table with me. Besides, it’s accomplished all it can hope for.”
“Do you think
they didn’t recognize you?” Lyster asked.
“I’m sure they
didn’t. I was in evening dress that night at Uncle Nathan’s.”
Redfern
listened with a bewilderment that changed to indignation.
“I seem to be
a gooseberry in this little game," he said with some bitterness. “Hadn't
you better let me in somewhere, Lyster? I saw Miss Cringan’s little play at the
table yesterday and this morning. I was on my way to get the low-down on it.
Whatever the game is, it seems a desperate idea to use Miss Cringan for such a
dangerous purpose.”
Lyster shook
his head apologetically. “I know I should have told you before, but I knew
you’d object. Your methods are different from mine, Redfern—the difference
between the professional and the amateur, I suppose. Miss Cringan and I agreed
that there might be something in this. We hope to worry these men back to the United States , to hound them out of Europe .”
“I’m still of
the opinion,” Redfern objected, “that all you’ll accomplish is to hound them
out of our sight. My idea is to keep track of them, not to risk losing them in
this big continent.”
“I’ve too much
confidence in Bruce Redfern to believe they can give us the slip.”
Redfern was
unmoved. “How do you think I got my reputation? Certainly not by permitting
amateurs to lay my course. . . . It just happens that this twist won’t probably
go wrong. I know where Frenchy will make for. By sheer luck I heard much of
their discussion in the Casino lobby. Frenchy will make for some place called
Banyuls, wherever it is. He called it his home town, yet it can’t be French
with that final ‘s’ pronounced. And there’s something more you can explain: Sydney received a letter
with his hat at the cloak-counter. Yours, of course. It upset them badly.”
“That’s good.”
Lyster smiled happily. “I haven’t much faith in Casino servants, but that one
got a cool hundred from me. You must see, Redfern, that as long as these
fellows are in Monte Carlo
we can do nothing.”
“Perhaps
you’ll tell me what the letter contained.”
“A gentle
reminder of the robbery we’re working on. I don’t want them to feel they’ve
thrown off pursuit. Now they’ll leave Monte
Carlo . You’ll see. We’ll follow—wherever they go. And
they’ll leave that place, too, and keep on moving, until the bloodhounds get
their nerve. There’ll be but one haven left—the United States . It’s a risk, but we
have to take a risk whatever we do. I’d like to convince you I’m right, Redfern.
Miss Cringan agrees with me.”
Redfern
shrugged. “Then what does it matter what I think?”
Chapter XV A Meeting of Rogues
SHIRLEY
returned to the Hôtel des Anglais, where the Cringans were staying before going
to Collioure. Redfern, the professor, departed to make contact once more with
his men. Lyster, fuming at his enforced seclusion, decided to risk another
airing, and, as usual, he sought the terrace.
The morning
promenaders were more numerous than ever, but Lyster, looking out over the
lower drive, was unconscious of it. The yacht race was in progress again, the
tiny white triangles dotting the brilliantly-coloured sea. A steamship lay at
anchor, but the one that had brought the Cringans had departed long ago for Naples . The crunch of feet
at his back, the chatter of voices in a dozen tongues, the rumble of trains,
the screech of trams rounding the climb from the Condamine, was drowsy symphony
to his dreams.
Roland Lyster
was thinking, not of the task that had brought him to Monte Carlo, but of the
girl who laid so unexpectedly been injected once more into his life in that
absorbing city. Save that her restless gaiety was heightened, flavoured,
indeed, by a recklessness that sometimes shocked him, she had not changed in
the ten weeks since he saw her last. She was still the alluring creature of
startling moods and wild enthusiasms, so inexplicable that he sometimes
trembled before them—though he took care that she should not suspect—so
unreasonable that often he longed to spank her.
The worrying
of the robbers at the gaming tables, while an offshoot of his own plan, originated
with Shirley, and she had undertaken it with her usual ardour. Indeed, he had
found it difficult to restrain her to the point where its object would not be
too apparent. But even as she worked with him, supported him against the more
practical Redfern, added touches of ingenuity beyond his imagination, he was
not blind to the fact that she still was the annoying young woman who took
pleasure in tantalizing him.
On the bench
nearest to where he stood looking out over the sea sat a party of Americans. He
recognized them by their accent and by their frank enjoyment of the coloured
scene. Without interest, at intervals he heard them discussing their trip,
criticizing the boat and its passengers, and comparing experiences at the
roulette tables.
A patter of broken
English interrupted:
“Pairfoom,
madam. You buy pairfoom? Good pairfoom—jasmine, chypre, lilac, hyacinthe.
Pairfoom de Grasse. Cheep pairfoom. I sell cheep.”
Lyster
recognized the studied ingenuousness that so often caught the credulous
tourist. Vaguely he wondered if the Americans would fall for it. But they were
not interested.
“Run along,” a
man’s voice said. “Nothing doing. We got enough junk now to sink the ship.”
Lyster turned
indifferently. What he saw was the usual dark-skinned “Algerian,” in big,
baggy, brightly-coloured trousers and sloppy tunic. To-morrow, failing sales
for his perfume, he would probably be offering the gaudy Oriental rugs—made in
Paris or Belgium—with the same ingenuous-sounding English but a different
wording. Lyster strolled away and climbed the steps beside the Casino. There he
stopped, leaning on the stone railing above the terrace.
The
perfume-seller hopefully plied his trade, though he seemed to be meeting with
little success. Bench after bench heard his practised jargon without interest.
Lyster watched
incuriously. The man was not a good salesman; he lacked the persistence of his
fellows. At the end of the terrace he turned back.
At that moment
a man in the moving crowd about him shifted his direction and pulled up beside
Lyster. It was Redfern, still the professor. Neither spoke, but Lyster read
that the detective was more than ordinarily interested in the crowd below.
The
perfume-seller, discouraged at last, had closed his little valise and taken the
one vacant bench immediately below where Lyster and Redfern stood leaning over
the railing. A moment later Lyster, looking around, missed the detective. His
eyes fell once more on the perfume-seller—and suddenly his bands gripped so
tightly over the railing that the knuckles stood out white.
Someone
touched him on the shoulder, and he whirled about. Redfern was beckoning him
back.
“So you
recognize him now?”
“I don’t see
how I failed to so long,” Lyster whispered back. “I’d know those small ears
anywhere, with that bull neck and square jaw—and the way he moves, like a
panther. The Skunk!”
Redfern’s lips
twisted to a smile. He turned away, making a slight gesture for Lyster to
follow. They talked only as gaps in the crowd permitted.
“Would you
have missed him if I hadn’t wakened you?”
“Perhaps. It
keyed me up a little.”
“And he’s
still selling perfume, the one job within the law that he knows! I ran across
him once on another case back home. We’re in luck—such luck that I can’t
imagine it will last.”
They moved
about the upper terrace, Lyster two paces behind. Now and then Redfern made his
way back to the railing and looked over.
In an
uncrowded spot he paused to light a cigarette. “I’m wondering if it is luck,”
he murmured, shaking his head. “I’m afraid we’ve such a big mouthful we’ll
choke ourselves. I can’t understand what The Skunk is doing here. . . . At the
best it means a big task for us, because there are three of them now to keep
track of . . . I’ve a feeling there’s something serious in the air, perhaps
tragedy—and that means disaster to us. The Skunk has bigger things in mind than
the sale of perfume. He wasn’t anxious about sales, anyway.”
“What do you
suspect?” Lyster inquired.
“He’s looking
for someone. I’m here to see who it is—and for what.”
The railing
was crowded enough now to risk a franker inspection of their man.
The Skunk was
still there, now plainly impatient and angry, and not a little disturbed. His
satchel of perfume lay on the ground beside him, and his eyes were fixed on the
steps at the west end of the terrace.
Lyster was
excited, though, as usual, he did not show it. His reputation for
self-possession was based hugely on his unemotional expression that so often
failed to record the tumult within. He considered Redfern’s inquietude. Were
they, indeed, involved now in a task too big for them? Were they by The Skunk’s
unexpected appearance on the scene pitched headlong into an entanglement with
which they were, only by numbers, unable to cope? How could a pair of them keep
in touch with three, especially as Lyster, at least, must remain unseen by one
of them, and Redfern was forced to trust to a disguise.
A tingle ran
through his veins. Here in Monte Carlo
were three of the four men they sought! He straightened his shoulders.
That the three
knew of one another’s presence there could be no doubt. The Monte
Carlo meeting was not accidental. But what did their meeting
imply? What did it portend? That, Lyster knew, was as great a puzzle to
Redfern. How could they hope to uncover the answer, when mere exposure meant
that the three would scatter and elude them? That more drastic means might be
taken by such men to escape pursuit did not occur to him.
It did not
surprise him, therefore, when Frenchy’s jerking head and stooped shoulders
appeared at the lop of the steps at the end of the terrace, and after a quick
glance about, made straight for The Skunk. Lyster drew back. He noticed, too,
that Redfern was taking no chances.
When they
dared to look again Frenchy was seated beside The Skunk rolling a cigarette.
They might have been any two casuals of the throng, for they seemed to pay no
attention to each other for a long time. Then a close observer—like the two
over their heads—would have noticed that, though the pair never looked at each
other, their lips moved. Presently they forgot their caution. They seemed to be
quarrelling, though they continued to keep their voices low. After a time
Frenchy threw a furious look at his companion, plunged to his feet and stalked
away.
The Skunk
glowered after him, then, jerking his satchel to his shoulder, he moved off in
the other direction, prattling his wares.
Chapter XVI Number Two
REDFERN
wandered about “the kitchen” of the Casino. He had taken more pains than usual
with his disguise, for he felt less confident of passing the inquiring eyes of
The Skunk, though that cunning rogue had seen him only once, a year before. The
Skunk’s presence had impelled him to urge once more that official action should
be taken without loss of time, but Lyster remained firm, and Shirley Cringan, who
never failed to impress on her companions that she knew her Uncle Nathan better
than either, supported him.
“If
extradition failed,” she warned, “Uncle Nathan would never rest. He’d be sure
to take desperate means to get hold of them. And you,” flashing a look at
Lyster, “would be foolish enough to do what he asked. No one knows better than
you, Mr. Redfern, how small a chance a foreigner has in these courts, and we’ve
only the word of a dead man to back up a demand for extradition. Yes, I know
you’d identify him, Mr. Lyster, but what weight would that carry when it was
pointed out that they were all masked? At the best the affair would drag on and
on, to the profit of no one but the French. The contents of American pockets
are heaven-sent manna to the French.”
Lyster argued
that with the funds of at least two of the three members of the gang getting
low, they would be forced to return to America before long. To that extent
the Casino was playing their game. In the end Redfern gave grudging consent to
delay action.
And so in “the
kitchen” he searched for his men. He had been on their track since noon, had
followed them to and fro from the Casino, and now they were back at the tables,
having returned before the evening rush in order to get seats.
He found them
without trouble. They were seated side by side, Sydney with a pile of discs
before him, while Frenchy kept clumsy record in a dirty note-book. The
brightness of their eyes, their twitchings and eagerness, proved that they were
having a run of luck.
But success
went to Sydney ’s
head, and after a time he abandoned the system as too slow and began to play
all around the number seventeen. On the very next turn the ball settled in
fourteen, and Sydney, with a grin, perspiring profusely, gathered in his
winnings. He repeated the play and lost. But the next fling of the ball brought
a killing, seventeen itself. The two men breathed audibly, while the crowd
smiled approvingly.
Frenchy, more
phlegmatic than his companion, less the confirmed gambler, had time to note
that across the table an elderly man was experiencing a run of luck equal to
their own and much more consistent. And he used hundred franc discs,
unobtrusively raking in his winnings and surreptitiously dropping them in his
pocket, so that the pile before him was no record of his good fortune. The very
time Sydney scored so heavily the old man had a
single piece en plein on seventeen,
but it won him more than Sydney ’s
cluster of red discs.
Frenchy’s eyes
glistened, and he let the lids droop over them. He whispered to his companion,
but Sydney ,
drowned in his own play, shook him off. Luck was turning. Time after time the
lucky number hugged the ends of the table, and the pair saw their pile
diminish, until only half a dozen discs remained.
With a
whispered word Frenchy left the table and was swallowed in the crowd.
Redfern kept
him in sight, puzzled and disturbed. That the fellow had something in mind was
evident, and anything in that man’s mind boded ill for someone. The detective
watched him for a time, then hurried from the Casino. Lyster was not in his
room, nor was he to be found by paging. Redfern had never been more excited. He
wanted Lyster badly, for there was work for both of them. Those two or three
minutes of keeping Frenchy in sight had warned him.
He hastened
back to the Casino.
But Sydney and
his companion had disappeared. A glance at the other side of the table brought
a familiar tingle to the detective’s veins, and again he raced for the hotel to
see if Lyster had yet returned. Not finding him he began to be alarmed. Where
could he be at such an hour? It was almost midnight, and Lyster had been so
careful to remain indoors except for necessary exercise and air. Redfern
wandered out and watched the thinning crowd leaving the Casino.
The streets grew
quieter, more deserted. Redfern set out for the slope leading down to the
Condamine. Lyster did much of his walking there, crowding his limited exercise
into climbing the hill where he was not likely to meet Dago George. In the
Hôtel de Paris many a window was still lighted, but the cliff below the hotel,
along the roadway, lay in black shadow. On the other side of the roadway was a
precipitous drop to the harbour.
Redfern had
the street to himself, save for three figures moving down the slope before him.
He stepped into the landing at the head of a flight of stairs dropping to the
wharf and leaned over the railing. He felt unaccountably uneasy. Something was
happening, or about to happen—he had learned to trust that throbbing in his
veins—and he had no idea what it was, or how to go about finding out. Had it
anything to do with Lyster’s inexplicable absence from the hotel at such an
hour? Should he—
He was brought
sharply upright by a cry—a cry choked off half-way. As he stood trying to
locate it he plainly heard the scuffle of feet, and he dashed into the roadway
and looked down the hill.
A confused
group was in sight, and he knew they must be the three he had seen ahead of him
a few seconds before. Almost at the same instant a man moved out from the shadow
of the cliff into the roadway. After a few steps he pulled up, then, crouched a
little, he crept nearer and nearer the group on the pavement.
Suddenly one
of them turned, uttered a smothered curse, and the hand that flew out in the
dim light was readily intelligible to the detective. At the end of that hand,
he knew, was a gun. It covered the men in the roadway, who stopped but did not
retreat.
The retirement
forced on him sometimes irritated Lyster beyond endurance. At such times the
one relief was to get out and walk. But he could never get enough of it, and
the care with which he must choose his streets and the continued vigilance wore
on him. It made his temper short, his patience thin. The Cringans were
remaining in town a couple of days more, but he had only once or twice seen
Shirley without the unromantic presence of the detective.
On this night
he watched the movement about the Casino, the lights, the intermittent stream
of customers at the café, until he could stand it no longer. He called up
Shirley Cringan at her hotel and proposed a stroll, but she was tied by a game
of double dummy with her father, a plan of her mother’s to keep him from the
gaming tables. Accordingly Lyster set out alone.
It was a balmy
night, and the wind came softly over the sea. With the settled instinct of
concealment he started down the slope to the Condamine, and presently found
himself on the wharf. The stillness of the night, the lights of the rock of Monaco ,
the flashing passage of a train, the twinkling portholes of a yacht anchored in
the harbour, and the broad planks of the wharf all to himself—he lost track of
time.
A gust of wind
that almost dislodged his hat brought him to himself. Looking at his watch as
he came to the street end of the wharf, he saw that it was almost midnight.
Accordingly he turned back and started to climb the stairs to the street,
avoiding the long slope. As he reached a landing near the top a man passed down
the slope. Instinctively Lyster stopped. A moment later two men moved along in
the same direction. Lyster had reached a point where he could just see above
the upper landing, and something in their manner made him look more closely.
It was Sydney and Frenchy!
Making no
sound, Lyster climbed to the street. He crossed it and disappeared in the
shadows under the cliff. He saw the three men now plainly, one twenty paces
ahead and alone. The broken group went on. Lyster kept pace with them under the
cliff, his heart beating fast.
He had begun
to wonder if his nerves were not getting the better of him, when the pair in
the rear quickened their pace. They neared the lone man ahead. Lyster grasped
his stick by the end. He carried no gun, partly because he had never carried
one, partly because he had no wish to become involved with inquisitive officials.
The three across the street were almost merged into a mass when Sydney leaped.
Their victim’s
outcry was cut off, choked by a violent hand. The next instant he lay on the
walk, and while Frenchy held him powerless Sydney went through his pockets.
Lyster started
to the rescue.
But half-way
across the street it flashed on him what his interference would mean.
Momentarily he drew up. Though it did not appear that the two ruffians were
unduly maltreating their victim, he could not remain a mere observer. He might
have cried out, but the instinct of secrecy was too strong, the desire to do
something more effective too urgent.
Neither Sydney nor Frenchy heard
him until he was only a few steps away. Then it was Sydney who whirled on him,
at the same time drawing a gun.
Lyster was too
near to leave doubt as to his identity, and Sydney , after a gasp of surprise, uttered a
foul oath.
“Aha! So it’s
you, is it? I begin to see daylight. So you’ve been trailing me all the time.
That’s why we meet so often.”
He had
transferred a great roll of notes to his left hand, while his right held the
gun steadily pointing. Lyster saw that Frenchy had made a complete job of
binding their victim, only muffled cries coming through the gag. At Lyster’s
appearance Frenchy had leaped away on the run, but with Sydney so plainly in control of the situation
he stopped and slowly returned, hugging the wall that cut off the pavement from
the drop to the harbour.
He never
completed the sentence. There was a quick movement at his back, a flash, and a
stunning report whanged into the cliff. And as Sydney , his lips parted in surprise, toppled
forward, Frenchy leaped on him, wrenched from his hand the roll of French
notes, and ran.
“That for
you!” he hissed. “I get my share at last.”
Lyster started
after him, but a grip of steel closed on his wrist.
“Stay where
you are,” Redfern whispered. “There’s a policeman coming. That shot would be
heard a mile.” He edged to the wall and, drawing a gun from his pocket, dropped
it over. “Now help me untie this old man. Remember, we just happened to be out
for a walk. We know nothing—nothing—nobody. And if you’ve a gun, for God’s sake
get rid of it right away. I hope this old chap doesn’t understand English. Is Sydney done for? It looks
like it.”
An under-sized
policeman in a comic-opera uniform came running down the street, gun in hand.
Redfern called to him in English to hurry, and pointed to Frenchy, far down the
street and making fast time.
“He shot this
man,” Lyster explained in French, pointing to Sydney ’s twisted body. “They were robbing
this other man, and then one shot the other and got away with the money. We
were too late to stop it.” He told their story, and the old man, who understood
no English, confirmed it. The policeman officiously searched them for weapons
nevertheless, and only then, when pursuit was obviously hopeless, set out after
Frenchy.
Lyster knelt
beside the dead man and struck a match. Several notes lay scattered about, and
these their owner pounced on and started to leave the scene. But Redfern
intercepted him.
“Tell him
he’ll have to stay till the policeman returns,” he told Lyster. “My French
isn’t quite up to it. There’ll be a volume of questions to answer, damn it!”
The policeman
puffed up the slope, empty-handed, pompously earnest in pursuing the least
dangerous course. For almost an hour three or four officials pestered them with
questions before they were permitted to go.
When they were
alone Lyster took Redfern’s arm. He sighed.
“Toni Boitani
gone. Now Sydney —number
two. And Mr. Hornbaker won’t be satisfied with the way they went.”
Chapter XVII Warning
LYSTER himself
was disappointed. He knew Nathan Hornbaker was more anxious to see the gang
punished for what it had done to him and his than for even more brutal crimes.
He concerned himself only with a single crime. The one relieving feature of Sydney ’s death was that it
simplified the pursuit of his companions. Instead of three, they now had but
two to deal with, and two who introduced no such complication as Lyster’s
previous acquaintance with the murdered man. That Frenchy would not recognize
him again he felt assured; until he grabbed the notes from Sydney ’s hand he was too distant to see
features in detail, and at that moment his one thought was to escape with his
booty.
Next day the
Cringans left for Collioure, their stay cut short by a warning from Redfern.
“Might as well
clear out,” he said, “before the police learn that you’re friends of ours.
Goodness knows what a siege of questioning we have before us.”
The publicity
of it appealed to Clifford at first, but when Redfern grew solemn about its
dangers, and feigned fear even for himself, there was no question of further
delay.
An hour before
the train was due to leave Shirley and Lyster met on the terrace.
“You’re in on
all the fun,” she complained. “ I can see myself settling down in an isolated
village, with nothing to do but watch the family budget and daddy’s moods. I
must keep mumsie from extravagance and daddy from despair. That’s a job in
itself without—without having to amuse myself amidst the erotic excesses of
every art colony I ever heard of . . . I wish I was a man.”
“There’d be
disadvantages,” Lyster replied, tongue-tied as usual before her, and hating
himself for it.
“That opens an
endless discussion—and we’ve only an hour.”
His heart
leaped, but he knew Shirley meant less than he wished to take from it. “Yes,”
he agreed, “it’s far too short.”
A train
rumbled beneath them, and they waited for it to pass.
“Too short for
what?” she asked, not looking at him.
“For—for
anything—anything important, I mean.”
“Is there
anything important to be said?”
His lips
parted in a gush of words: “Many things. Important to me, at any rate. You
think certain things of me. Please don’t interrupt. I know you think them; you
make no effort to conceal it.”
“Oh,” she cut
in, tapping the stone railing with her finger-tips, “does it matter what I
think?”
“It does. It
would matter to any man.”
“Oh—to any
man?” Her tone was frigid now. “An academic discussion, a beautifully impersonal
conversation to fill our last hour.”
“Academic, if
you like, but vital . . . and not impersonal.” He was finding his tongue.
“You’ve sneered at me persistently. Once, at a trying moment, you called me a
hero.”
She clacked
her tongue impatiently. “Can you never forget that?”
“Would you
expect me to? Would you wish me to?”
“To me it
seems the least important subject we could discuss, Mr. Lyster. You’re
concerned only with your reputation—”
“With you,” he
broke in.
She ignored
it. “Concerned with your reputation—at last. How encouraging! I imagined you
had such a big job on your hands that my words and thoughts would be
immaterial.”
“They’re never
immaterial. I couldn’t have a job big enough for that.”
Shirley
shifted her head away, to look over the rock of Monaco . “And to think we never
found time to visit the oceanographic museum! But then, that too is
unimportant. . . . What do you plan to do now?”
“Redfern and I
must remain for certain tiresome official formalities in connection with Sydney ’s murder, then we
start for Banyuls.”
“You think
Frenchy will stick to that plan?”
“He can’t have
reason for changing it. He doesn’t know Redfern heard him mention the place
that day in the Casino lobby—and with Sydney
dead it looks like a safer hiding-place than ever. At any rate, it’s the one
place to look for him.”
“What about
The Skunk?”
Lyster thought
for a moment. “Of course, we won’t let him escape us. He’s our first care, the
one we want most. I’m not likely to forget the part he played.”
She asked
where Banyuls was.
“I haven’t any
idea yet. We’ve had no time to go into that. When you’re gone we’ll—”
“I’m sorry to
have been such a nuisance,” she laughed. “I hope you’ll keep us informed at
Collioure how things are going.”
“But you
haven’t been a nuisance,” he protested. “Not here,” he added thoughtlessly.
“Redfern and I owe you something—though Redfern still doesn’t quite fall in
with our plan. . . . He has a talking point now, because he contends we might
have had Sydney back alive in the United States
if we’d done as he wished.”
“And have
missed Frenchy and The Skunk.”
“I’ll remind
him of that.”
“So that,”
with a fling of her head, as she turned to move away, “our hour has not been
wasted. You have an argument for your friend. So glad we met, so important that
we should have met. Now the taxi will be waiting at the hotel, and mumsie will
be fuming. So kind of you to give us this time, when you might have been
searching the map for Banyuls—and Collioure. I suppose you never once thought
of Collioure.”
“I—I—” he stammered.
“Let’s drop
the subject,” she laughed, and hurried on.
Roland Lyster
was not disturbed about The Skunk; he felt certain of the Syrian’s destination.
A native of North Africa, though born of Syrian parents, he was certain to
return there at the end of the winter Riviera
season, if only to renew his supplies of perfume. But Lyster had no intention
of letting him out of his sight if he could help it.
An intensive
search of three days, however, failed to locate his man, and he was almost on
the point of handing everything over to Redfern to decide, when The Skunk
wandered once more into the picture. He was in the park before the Casino,
following his occupation of desultory perfume vending. The slack way in which
he went about his only apparent method of making a living in itself aroused
suspicion, and Lyster followed him toward the terrace with heightened
curiosity.
No one so much
as glanced at his wares, or paused to listen to his patter. But it did not seem
to depress or discourage him. Again and again he walked the length of the
terrace, holding up long tubes of colour, leering and jabbering. At length,
after a careful look about, he found an empty bench and sat down, placing his
satchel beside him and spreading himself to discourage company.
Lyster passed
on—returned—seemed only then to notice the almost empty bench, and seated
himself at the other end, the satchel between them. For a time he did not so
much as look at his companion, but as he shifted his knees his eye fell on the
satchel that lay open beside him, a wooden rack inside filled with bottles and
vials.
He nodded
toward it. “Grasse
perfume, I suppose?”
The Skunk
started. “Yaiz—Grasse —mooch.
Some from Tunis .”
“Tunis , eh? That’s
interesting. I thought it all came from Grasse .
Let’s see, where is Tunis ?
In Africa somewhere, isn’t it? I didn’t know
niggers made perfume.”
The Skunk
straightened. “Me, I come from Tunis .
Only some niggers there—like everywhere. The souks—none there—just servants.
The Souk El Attarine—all big pairfoom men there.” He was having trouble with
his dialect, and he knew it.
“Souk El
Attarine, eh? Sounds foreign and interesting. Anything to see there—worth going
for?”
“Mooch—everything.”
The Skunk spread his hands in some excitement. “Grandest souks in the world in Tunis , the biggest
perfume street in the world.” He realized that he had forgotten his role and
added in the customary jargon, “goot pairfoom.”
“I thought Grasse made most of the
perfume of the world. So they grow the flowers and all that in Tunis ?”
“No, no. No grow
flowers—no make—but best pairfoom there. Most sell in all the world maybe. Sell
and sell and sell. Attar of roses too!” He rolled his eyes.
Lyster laughed
indulgently. “Come, come, now, one can’t buy attar of roses like that. It takes
a ton of roses, I’m told, to make two ounces of attar—worth a king’s ransom.
I’ve been to Grasse ,
you know.”
“Aw, Grasse !” The Skunk spat
contemptuously. “Roumania—that’s where they grow the real flowers, make the
real perfume. Grasse —bah!”
He returned nervously to the jargon. “Grasse
cheep. Some pretty goot, most cheep.” He dived a big hand into the satchel and
produced a yellow vial, tilting it from side to side. The yellow contents did
not flow. “Pairfoom, that. No make like it in Grasse . Sell in Tunis . See.” He wrapped his long fingers
about the vial for a few moments, and when he released it again the fluid
flowed sluggishly. “One drop—that’s enough for a week.”
“You speak
good English,” Lyster applauded.
The Skunk
shook his head. “No, no. No goot Eengleesh. I spik a leetle—to sell
pairfoom."
Lyster nodded.
Suddenly he faced the man. "As long as you understand it,” he said
pointedly.
The Skunk did
not move, his hand half-way into the satchel, but a vein in his neck swelled
and beat visibly. “What do you mean?”
“The other day
you were sitting on that bench with a man the police want.”
Still The
Skunk did not move. “You mak beeg meestake.” He picked up the satchel. “No
friends, me, in Monte Carlo .
I sit—anywhere. Sell pairfoom, that’s all.”
Lyster ignored
it. “The police, I said, are looking for your friend. He killed a man the night
of the day you were talking to him, and he got something like fifty thousand
francs off his victim.”
The Skunk
stared at him. “You mak beeg meestake,” he repeated vaguely, “beeg meestake.”
“All right,
I’m warning you, that’s all. The police will be interested in the friend of a
murderer. I wouldn’t like to see you jugged for nothing—in this place. They’re
apt to forget a prisoner, I’m told.”
“You mak
meestake,” The Skunk kept repeating, starting away.
“But the
police never admit they do,” Lyster called after him.
He watched the
baggy blue trousers disappear at the end of the terrace. The crowd had thinned,
for it was lunch-time. Not once had The Skunk stopped to display his wares.
“I think,”
Lyster mused, “there’ll be one fewer pairfoom-seller in Monte
Carlo to-morrow.”
Chapter XVIII In A Fishing Village
IN a groove of
the eastern Pyrenees, down which rushes a seasonal mountain torrent that
disappears in summer-time, lies the quaint all-year fishing village and summer
bathing resort of Banyuls-sur-Mer. Hugging tightly the roundest little harbour
in the world, with mountains piled about its other three sides, and the Spanish
border only six miles away, it is known elsewhere only for its medicinal wine.
With its dozen
small fishing-boats drawn up on the wide shingly beach after a night’s catch of
the most outlandishly coloured fish, with the “Dutch” auction in progress to
the tune of the local dialect, with perhaps a game of bowls blocking the main
street that curves about the beach, it is like no other village in the world.
That is before
the rush of bathers in July.
After that for
two months the village is a welter of skimpily-clad children, of almost as
skimpily-clad adults who, attracted by the sea breeze and the shallow water,
crowd the place out of all semblance to its real self, packing the scores of
apartments beyond comfort and good sanitation; noisy, not over-clean, living on
snatched meals, sleeping almost in layers, but completely and drowsily happy. Spain
flocks across the border to join its French neighbour where children can wander
safely so far into the sea that they tire before passing beyond their depth.
And then the
hamlet settles back to ten months of its own peculiar life. Rugged fishermen,
of generations of fishermen, dump their cargoes of blue and scarlet and green
and purple fish on the beach, each kind carefully stored in its respective box;
and beside them are boxes of hideous octopi and their kind that figure so
frequently as entries on the menus of cheaper hotels. Fish-merchants from
Perpignan are there to buy as the price rattled off by the auctioneer descends
to their estimate of value, while the main street is cluttered with shouting
men rolling metal-studded wooden bowls for dix
sous a count, with the spectators often joining in the betting.
Often during
those ten months a wind howls down the mountain gorges, bending the trees and
raising a thick cloud of dust, always a chill wind that makes the snowless
winter bleak and trying.
Roland Lyster
dropped from the train before the small station on the hill above the village
and stared about him. From where he stood he could see no more than half a
dozen buildings, decrepit and for the most part deserted, and out beyond, far
below, the blue Mediterranean . But as he moved
along the platform the roofs of other houses under the slope came into view. A
chill wind blew down from the mountains on his back, and the two
fellow-passengers who had alighted with him hurried away.
He felt more foreign
than ever before in his life. The station appeared empty, the part of the
village within sight untenanted, and the cold glimpse of house-tops
unwelcoming. But as he stood wondering what to do the stationmaster appeared
and glanced inquiringly at him.
“Will you
please tell me if there is a good hotel here?” Lyster inquired in French.
“Oui, oui,
oui, monsieur.” The stationmaster hurried toward him. “A very, very good hotel
indeed. Voilà!”
He pointed to
a large building perched on a knob beyond the village. It had evidently once
been a residence.
"It is
not cheap, monsieur, but perhaps you won’t think so. You're American—no,
English.”
Lyster was
accustomed to the change of mind. His American clothes failed to conceal his
English origin from more than a casual glance.
“Yes, I’m
English. Thank you.”
The
stationmaster put his fingers to his lips and whistled, as a bus, previously
hidden by the building started away. The rattly old car pulled up.
"You'd
better take the bus,” he advised. “ It's quite a walk, and the streets are none
too clean.”
“Thank you,
but I prefer to walk—if the bus will carry my bags.”
The
stationmaster himself lifted the two suitcases to the bus and gave directions,
and the car moved off, its two visitors now frankly curious.
“Do you intend
to stay long, monsieur? We don’t have many visitors at this time of the year.
But in the summer!” He lifted eyes and hands dramatically. “They say,” he
grinned, “the summer bathers in Banyuls raise the tide across the sea at Algiers .”
Lyster duly
laughed, though he had heard the same charge brought against at least two other
bathing resorts.
“Did you say
you were staying?” the man repeated, not to be put off.
“I don’t
know—I don’t think so. I’m just wandering about.” They had moved out to the
verge of the slope and stood now looking down on the village. “A pretty place,”
Lyster approved, “and such a quaint harbour. But why should it be favoured in
the summer? People winter all along this coast.”
For answer the
stationmaster lifted his hand and looked toward the mountains. “That wind. It’s
bad in winter, and very cold. . . . One or two of the apartments are let
through the winter. A Canadian has one—a painter he is. Two Englishmen, too,
come off and on, without regard to season. You may not like it—at first. But
to-morrow it will be fine. And when it’s fine!” He held up both hands, as if
blessing the place.
“I see you
like it,” Lyster said.
“We Banyulites
think there’s nothing like it on earth. Some go—many return. Something about
it—Only a few days ago one who was born here returned from America . He’s been away twelve
years, too—but he had to come back. He’s here to stay now, he says. . . . He
can afford it—he made a fortune over there, of course.” He sighed.
Lyster was
more than interested. “I’ve lived in America myself for several years.
It’s a great country, but few make a fortune in twelve years. Your friend must
be clever.”
“Marius Rivaud
never had much of a reputation for cleverness when he was here,” the
stationmaster declared. “Just an ordinary boy, a bit wild and all that, but
over there they all have a chance, I’m told. He must have changed his name in America ;
they say he left another name at the post office.”
He looked
Lyster over again. “I’m afraid you may have some difficulty understanding the people
at first. They talk a mixture of French and Spanish, but they can speak French,
of course, and they’ll understand you. You speak the language well. I hope you
like the hotel, sir.”
With a low
bow, shivering a little in the wind, he trotted back to the shelter of the
station.
Lyster could
scarcely believe his good fortune. Though Toni's girl had been able to give
them no more of Frenchy’s real name than Marius, even without that Lyster knew
now that the man he sought was in Banyuls. Luck was with him once more.
He dropped
down a winding flight of stone steps from the edge of the road and followed a
tangle of dirty streets, without sidewalks, open gutters of running waste water
on either side, to the beach. Odour and filth all about, but a naive frankness
about it that robbed it of some of its repulsiveness. The sharp slope of the
streets deprived it of some of its unsanitariness.
He was
immensely interested in all he saw. Bake-shops and stables, metal-workers and
flowering gardens, butcher-shops and wine-shops, open kitchens and yards piled
with every manner of junk—they were jumbled together in a hopelessly
unpromising mess, but, strangely enough, Lyster was not shocked. “À louer” signs stared at him from scores
of windows; the whole village seemed to be made up of apartments to let. He
could well credit the stationmaster’s dramatic gesture.
The main
street he found by simply continuing downward. It skirted the beach, the other
side lined irregularly with stores, several of them cafés and drinking-places.
The “à louer” signs stretched to the
horizon. Far at the end a sturdy stone breakwater was visible, at its inner end
an imposing stone building that seemed out of place in such an unimposing
hamlet. A circle of cement in the heart of the main square puzzled him. Its use
he was to discover later, for it was to play a part in the coming adventure.
He attracted
no attention whatever, so far as he could see, though he was not sure that it
was more than politeness; and presently he reached the foot of the hill on
which perched the hotel he sought. He climbed the steep road and entered a long
winding walk between green shrubs that formed an almost solid hedge on either
side.
The hotel, he
found, was promising enough, but almost deserted. Indeed, but for three boarders
who seemed to have settled there, none of them speaking English, he was alone.
One other hotel he had seen at a distance, at the end of the road near the
breakwater.
Established in
a tower room, he set out to explain his presence. He had, he told the
proprietor, heard of Banyuls from a friend, an archaeological student. (From
the train he had seen the old Moorish towers on the mountain tops, and lines of
ancient roads leading to them.) The proprietor was satisfied. Fortunately, too,
Lyster knew something of Banyuls wine from a conversation with a passenger on
the way from Perpignan .
The proprietor launched into eulogies of the wine, though Lyster discovered
later that the product of the adjacent mountain slopes was merely doctored with
herbs to give it individuality, a clever trick of the natives, because they
could not hope otherwise to compete with the prolific vineyards of other parts
of France.
Lyster need
not have worried explaining; his presence was accepted as routine.
That he would
have no trouble locating Frenchy was certain. The village was small and tight,
and most of the business was done within the space of two hundred yards on the
main street and on one immediately behind. And since Frenchy would not know
him, he could search for him openly.
That evening
he contented himself with a stroll to the upper end of the village along the
breakwater. The huge stone building, he learned, was an aquarium, a research
department in connection with a distant university.
Next morning
he rose late, the lazy tourist, and, breakfasting at his leisure, strolled down
to the harbour and turned toward the shops. It was after ten, and in the
distance the fishing-boats were making for the harbour with their morning
catch. A small crowd was gathering on the beach, and a few business cars from
other towns were lined up awaiting the auction that would start immediately on
the arrival of the fish. He walked out on the shingle with the crowd.
One by one the
boats were beached, the crowd tugging at the ropes. The fish were unloaded and
the auction began.
A voice at his
elbow sent the blood pounding to his temples.
“You’ve been a
long time, Mr. Lyster. Don’t look at me. We’d better not be seen talking
together.”
It was Shirley
Cringan!
For several
seconds Lyster could not speak. Then: “I’m going up there among the hills. I’ll
wait for you beyond the village.” He indicated with a nod of his head the road
to the west.
Shirley pursed
her lips. “Aha! A clandestine tryst! How you’ve altered! I see you didn’t
escape the contaminating influence of Monte
Carlo . Well, after a couple of weeks of Collioure I’m
reckless. I’ll be there.”
He turned and
sauntered back to the street and followed it to the west, past the aquarium, up
the winding hill beyond, and at the crest turned into an almost invisible path
through the vineyards.
As he walked
he thought of the girl who had once more appeared so unexpectedly. He did not
wonder how she came to be there. He knew. He remembered the eagerness with
which she joined their plans at Monte
Carlo , the sparkle in her eyes when something was
given her to do, the gravity with which she discussed the next step.
Shirley
Cringan was determined to be in at the death! He closed his teeth against it,
for she could not realize the peril they faced with such a ruthless rogue as
Frenchy.
Seating
himself on a rock where he could watch the road, he waited for her.
He saw her
climbing the dusty road with her muscular stride, looking about for him, and he
rose and made a signal for her to follow him higher on the slope. They found a
spot among the low, prickly scrub that covered the mountain-side and sat down.
“You’re mad,
Miss Cringan!” he burst out. “I shouldn’t have told you of Banyuls.”
She regarded
his anxious face for a moment with laughing eyes. “So you think I followed you
here, that I deserted my fond and protecting parents for the unknown perils of
a young man with a desperate purpose in mind? Or is it a quasi-elopement, with
me the Amazon?”
He flushed. “I
wish you’d be serious,” he chided.
“You knew we
were coming to Banyuls—”
“Where’s your
detective friend?” she broke in.
“Redfern will
be here to-day.”
“Indeed! And
so tardy of both of you. . . . I’ve been here every day for a week—every day
since I discovered where Banyuls is. I was so hungry to see you again,” she
teased, “you and Mr. Redfern. But let’s be serious: I’m quite as anxious as you
to run down Hutton’s murderers. Uncle Nathan will never smile till we do.”
“We?” he
protested. “You have nothing to do with it. It’s no job for you. Besides—”
She interrupted
again, this time more impatiently.
“We won’t
argue that now. I suppose you didn’t take the trouble to find out where
Collioure is. I see you didn’t. Thanks for your interest in the Cringans. Well,
it’s only a few miles away, toward Perpignan .
You must have come through it; but apparently you weren’t interested.”
“I
was—thinking only of Banyuls,” he stammered, overwhelmed with the old
tongue-tied helplessness she could so easily impose on him.
“Of course.
But why delay the chase?”
Lyster told of
the curiosity and persistence of the Monte Carlo
police, and of his search for The Skunk. It had, indeed, looked as if he, “one
of those rich Americans,” would have to bribe someone to get away at all.
Because what are Americans for in Europe but
to share their wealth with the French and the Swiss? There with her alone on
the silent mountain-side, with a world of furze about them and the colourful
sea stretched below them, he knew how lame it sounded. He knew, too, that
Shirley had seldom been out of his mind since he saw her last.
“I’ve been
running about,” she said, taking pity on him, “seeing the country. It explains
my daily absences from home. . . . If I’d been picking a spot for a visit it
would have been Banyuls-sur-Mer, though Collioure is pretty enough. . . . I’ve
seen Frenchy.”
He frowned.
“But that’s dangerous, foolishly rash. He might—”
“Sh-sh!” She
held up a silencing hand. “Don’t tempt me too far. I’m just dying for
excitement. Of course, he’d know me if he saw me. . . . It struck me we might
turn that to account. I decided to do nothing until I talked with you.” She
caught her knees in her clasped hands and stared out to sea. “I like your ways
much better than Mr. Redfern’s.”
“And my way,”
he told her firmly, “is for you to stay out of this. It’s a man’s job. These
fellows are desperate; they’ll stop at nothing. Marius is a brute.”
The gravity
and unwonted determination in his tone impressed her. Suddenly she burst out:
“I can’t just
hang around Collioure, Mr. Lyster, I can’t. You don’t know. I see what it’s
coming to . . . and it isn’t good for any of us. But mumsie and daddy must
decide for themselves. With me it’s different. I must go my own way—and what
way that is depends . . . a little . . . on you. I’ve thought and thought, but
there’s no thinking in Collioure, just dawdling and dreaming and painting vivid
word-pictures of the future that never comes. Would you like me to settle down
to that?”
“What have I
to do with it, Miss Cringan?”
She shook
herself irritably. “It’s not as personal as that. I was counting on your
interest in Uncle Nathan’s relatives. To that extent it’s personal. You can
help—if you will.”
“I’m waiting
to hear how,” he said, his heart beating fast.
“Let me help
you,” she cried. “Daddy and mumsie don’t need me. I’m rather in the way, a cold
blanket on their enthusiasms. I need what only you can give me—occupation,
something to fill my time, to keep my mind from dry-rot. I helped a little in Monte Carlo , you said.
Frenchy is here in Banyuls. I’ve been thinking of that. Listen, and don’t say a
word till I’m through.”
Shirley
Cringan found her way to the railway station by following a path along the
mountain-side; she did not touch the village. Lyster returned to his hotel by
the road.
Chapter XIX Desperate
NEXT day
Lyster came face to face with Frenchy and passed the test of recognition with
satisfying success.
Frenchy was
standing on the sidewalk, watching the game of primitive bowls indulged in by
rural Europe . In this case the “green” was the
uneven main street, the bowls of wood thickly studded with nails. What little
traffic there was had to turn out on the beach to pass. It was a noisy game,
clamorous of disappointment or elation, spectators equally vocal with the
players. Pieces of copper passed from hand to hand.
Frenchy was betting
boisterously, rattling a pocketful of coins. He had tried for days to find
takers in notes, then in bronze, smiling superiorly at the pettiness of the
stakes. Driven finally to copper, he wagered with abandon. He became as much
part of the game as the bowlers themselves.
Roland Lyster
worked his way to his side. Frenchy had become in these few days a local
institution. A millionaire, of course, one who had seen the great world; he was
even called on to settle disputes, which he did impartially and often to his
own loss. Frenchy was having the time of his life.
Lyster placed
a bet with him, lost, and retired.
At the same
hour of the following afternoon the game was on again, and Frenchy was there to
rattle his coins and to bask in the reverence of his less fortunate
fellow-townspeople. Lyster, too, was on hand, but he contented himself with
watching the game from the table of a nearby café. As he sipped his citronade Shirley Cringan came down the
street and stopped to watch the game. Lyster saw her cleverly working her way
nearer Frenchy, who was betting largely and recklessly.
As the latter
lifted a coin and asked for takers Shirley opened her purse and extracted a
two-franc piece. She held it before Frenchy’s face. The latter turned to her,
started visibly, and a black frown spread over his face. The hand that held the
coin slowly dropped.
The crowd
watched without understanding. Frenchy recovered himself. He fixed his eyes on
the two-franc piece.
"Madame
is a born gambler,” he said in French with a leer.
Shirley shook
her head. “I don’t speak French, but I'm willing to bet either way—and any
amount.” She drew from her purse a roll of notes.
The crowd
whispered audibly that here was another American millionaire. Frenchy
hesitated, but among his townspeople he could not pretend that he did not
understand English.
"I don’t
bet with women,” he said contemptuously in English. "This is just for
fun.” He edged away from her.
Shirley did
not insist. Instead she pocketed the coin and, smiling significantly at the
faces about her, turned to watch the game. Frenchy, lingering only a moment or
two on the outskirts of the crowd, strolled away and started up the steep,
rocky slope at the end of the street. Lyster addressed a fellow- patron at an
adjoining table:
“He speaks
English,” he said in French. “Is his home here?”
“Yes,
monsieur, but he has lived in America .
Marius Rivaud has come back with his pockets lined with gold. They say he could
buy out the town. He was born in that house up there—you see it, monsieur?—it
has a small balcony before it there where the washing hangs. Oh, yes,"
with a sigh, “Marius has done well for himself. But everyone does in America .”
Lyster paid
his bill and left. Shirley wandered into a side-street, but he did not follow.
He looked about for Redfern, who should have arrived a couple of hours before,
but the crowd had almost disappeared for the night meal before the detective
came through an archway that led to a back street and turned along the
harbour-front. Lyster started after him, keeping his distance. But on the
breakwater at the end of the harbour they were able to exchange a few words.
Frenchy was
not a spectator of the game on the next afternoon. It was a disagreeable day,
with a bitter wind roaring down the mountain valleys, bending the trees and
driving the café patrons indoors. Lyster was alarmed. Had their plan failed?
Had Frenchy taken fright and fled? That he had recognized Shirley as the girl
who stole the discs at the Casino could not be doubted, but that in itself
should not alarm him; there was no reason why he should connect the girl with Sydney ’s murder.
At last,
driven by the uncertainty, Lyster climbed the rocky street to the house that
had been pointed out, and was relieved to behold Frenchy on the balcony staring
down the street toward the village. Lyster walked on.
That night he
and Redfern met after dark on the breakwater.
“I don’t like
it,” the detective grumbled. “It isn’t that I stand out against your plan, but
it’s too dangerous to let Miss Cringan in on it.”
“For Heaven’s
sake don’t tell her that, or we couldn’t keep her out. At any rate, the whole
thing depends on her at this point. Frenchy has no immediate intention of
leaving town, so we can go on as we are.”
On the fifth
day something happened that made him less confident. Indeed, it threatened to
upset everything and certainly crowded the issue.
The Skunk
appeared in Banyuls!
Lyster’s luck
was with him again, for he saw him in time to avoid him. But it alarmed him
more than a little that while the Syrian remained in Banyuls everything must be
left to Redfern and Shirley.
After dark he
and the detective met again. Redfern, too, had seen The Skunk and had not yet
decided what to do about it. He had managed to keep him in sight and had seen
the pair meet. That it was unexpected and unwelcome on Frenchy’s part was
evident. Already upset by Shirley’s appearance on the scene, he greeted his old
friend with frank suspicion and dislike. But The Skunk had passed it off,
acting the jovial friend. It had not gone down well, and the two had gone off
together in no mutual friendliness. The big Syrian’s hand dropped once on
Frenchy’s shoulder, only to be shaken off angrily.
“I’d rather,”
Redfern declared gloomily, “that for the time being they were friends. It
begins to look as if we’ll have to split our forces. I’m not prepared to lose
sight of The Skunk again. He seems in no hurry to get to this Tunis of yours. We must keep in mind that
he’s the one we want most—”
“And the
easiest to trace,” Lyster interjected.
“But also the
cleverest. And once he finds we’re on his trail he’ll throw us off more easily
than Frenchy could. No, I’ll keep in touch with him. You must look after
Frenchy. And I want to impress on you that you’re in more danger than I will
be. Frenchy will murder in a panic, recklessly. The Skunk will at least use
cunning about it.”
“I can see our
plan,” Lyster declared, “ already beginning to work on Frenchy. He s uneasy.
Miss Cringan has—”
“You propose
to keep on using her?”
Lyster
shrugged. “I’ve no choice in the matter. . . . So long as The Skunk is here
we’ll at least be within reach of each other, you and I.”
The following
day Lyster spent prowling about the village, as inconspicuous as possible. For
the most part he kept to the wide beach, where he could see all that went on
along the street without himself attracting attention. There were always
strollers on the shingle.
Thus, as
darkness fell, he saw the two men meet at a table before a café, and he took
his stand in the shadows and watched.
They were
evidently on no better terms than the day before. Frenchy was sullen, The Skunk
the annoyingly boisterous friend. Frenchy was suspicious and took no pains to
conceal it. He knew the ways of The Skunk. They conversed intermittently, and
when at last they parted, the Syrian paying the bill, Frenchy set off alone at
a rapid pace. Lyster followed.
He overtook
him shortly before the main road branched to the left up the slope, with
Frenchy’s street continuing steeply straight ahead. It was the time of the
after-glow, with the western sky reflected blindingly in the white walls at the
foot of the hill.
“I think,”
Lyster said, dropping in at Frenchy’s side, “I think I saw you not long ago in Monte Carlo .”
Frenchy
whirled, his hand sliding to a pocket. “Who the devil—!” he began in English,
the language Lyster had used. Then his manner changed. “You’re makin’ a
mistake. Never was in Monte Carlo
in my life.”
“Oh, yeah?”
Lyster laughed lazily. “I don’t make mistakes like that. But you needn’t get
starchy. I’m not going to give you away. I saw you in the Casino several times.
You were with a man who was murdered later on the road down to the Condamine.”
Lyster stepped aside to let two men pass.
“If I’d cared
to,” he went on, rejoining Frenchy, “I could have told that to the police. I
might even have told them who murdered that man—though they don't need much
telling. You see, someone saw the murdered man and his murderer holding up an
old man who had made a killing at the tables. The French police are clever.”
Frenchy glared
at him. “I don’t know what you’re talkin about,” he snarled. “You’re all wet.”
“All right,”
indifferently, “but listen. It makes an interesting story, at any rate. The
French police happen to know that the two friends I speak of conversed in
English, and they ve traced the record of the murdered man. . . . I think you
see the point.”
For several
moments Frenchy was silent, then he laughed nastily. “Do I look woolly? Wot’s
yer game?”
“Oh,
nothing—if you prefer to take it that way. What do you think would be my game?
If I wished, I could hand you over any time. But don’t be alarmed. I know what
it is to be dodging the police . . .I thought I could escape them over home by
skipping out.” He managed a bitter laugh. “I’d hate a lot worse to have the
French police on my heels. If that happened to me I’d make for the good old
United States, where a fellow has a chance—with a bit of money, and old pals to
help, and smart lawyers to get him off if he’s caught. Here? Say, once they
know you’ve lived in America
they’ll milk you dry—and give you a long stretch besides.”
“Nobody can
prove nothin’ on me. I ain’t got nothin’ to hide, anyway.”
“Is that so?”
Lyster caught his arm in a confidential way. “All right,” as Frenchy wrenched
himself free, “have it your own way. But, say, what about that girl that’s
trailing you?”
Frenchy pulled
up sharply. “You mean that—Wot girl?” he growled suspiciously.
“The one that
tried to bet with you day before yesterday.”
“Wot about
her? ” Frenchy was listening soberly now.
“Know anything
about her? Ever see her before?”
“Yer damn
right I did! She stole my chips—Say,” he demanded, “you tryin’ to put one
over?”
“I wouldn’t be
so foolish. I don’t need to. And what about that big guy I saw you with just
now, drinking at the café?”
“Well, wot
about him? I just ran across him—had a drink.”
“Perhaps. But
did he just run across you? I’ve a
great memory for faces. He was selling perfume on the terrace in Monte Carlo a couple of
weeks ago. You happened to be there at the same time. You just ran across him
there too, I suppose. You see how much I know—or a little of it. But don’t
worry about me; it’s the French police you should worry about.”
Frenchy’s hand
crept toward his pocket. “Say, what are you—a dick?”
Lyster only
laughed. “You think that because I try to warn you. Sounds foolish, doesn’t it?
Perhaps you didn’t know the French police are offering twenty-five thousand
francs for the murderer of Dago George.”
“You
mean—twenty-five thousand—for me?”
“I wonder how
well your friend back there knows it. There isn’t an easier way to make a
thousand dollars, is there?”
Frenchy lost
control of himself. “By God, the guy that tries that is in for a bellyful!” He
drew an automatic; Lyster saw the light flash from the barrel. “I thought The
Skunk had something up his sleeve, damn him! All right,” throwing his shoulders
back, “I’ll give him a chance to hang himself. I can tell things on him. Sure I
knew him—and I never liked him. He’s always on the look for an easy mark. I
thought I knew what he was after, but maybe you’re right." He shoved the
gun into his pocket, and without another word plunged up the rocky slope toward
his home.
Lyster made no
attempt to follow.
The next day
was Saturday, and Lyster kept under cover, leaving Redfern to the double task
of keeping an eye on the pair. Would his warning, he wondered, accomplish his
purpose? Thinking it over, he convinced himself that Frenchy had no intention
of fleeing immediately. Treachery, to men like Frenchy, was the one
unforgivable crime, to be punished at any cost and, since The Skunk had no
immediate thought of handing him over to the police, Frenchy would remain to
exact vengeance. He would know, too, that he would never be safe as long as The
Skunk was alive.
That thought,
relieving as it was in one respect, introduced a new fear: vengeance would mean
death to one or the other of the pair. Lyster had no wish to let another of the
gang escape in that way.
With darkness
he set out for a walk. The sound of music from the main street turned his feet
toward the heart of the village. There the purpose of the circular cement floor
in the little square was explained. It was a dancing platform. A dance was in
progress now. Lights were set up about the circle, and a not unmusical
orchestra was seated just outside. The entire village seemed to have turned
out, either to watch or to dance. A rope held by temporary posts encircled the
platform, and benches were set about inside.
Lyster was not
surprised to see Frenchy the centre of a throng of young people as each dance
ended. His swarthy face was wreathed in smiles as he turned from one admiring
girl to another, but underneath Lyster read a certain amount of restraint, of
guardedness. Now and then a searching glance went over the crowd.
His manner
puzzled Lyster a little. There was bravado in it, the expression, Lyster
decided, of his purpose of punishing The Skunk. But there was something more—an
eagerness, a more sustained inspection of the faces beyond the ropes than
seemed to be called for in a search for the conspicuous person of his burly
comrade. Lyster retired to the shadows.
Returning
after a few minutes, he missed the Frenchman. Then he saw him standing among
the ticket-sellers. He saw him look up and make a sudden move out into the
throng, and Lyster, looking ahead, saw with a start of alarm Shirley Cringan.
The girl moved
forward, and with a teasing smile stopped before the man Lyster had warned
against her. Frenchy’s face was dark as a thunder-cloud. But Shirley smiled up
at him, and for a moment they conversed, the crowd closing about them. Then, to
Lyster’s stunning amazement, she took the man’s arm and they turned back to the
dancing floor.
But Frenchy
had other plans. As they neared the entrance through the ropes his arm closed
more tightly over Shirley’s hand, and he led away through the crowd to the open
street. A quick look of alarm showed for a moment in Shirley’s face, and her
glance ranged swiftly about, as if for help. Then she was her smiling self once
more.
Lyster acted
quickly. They had taken no more than a dozen steps beyond the edge of the crowd
when he stood before them.
“Excuse me,
monsieur,” he said in rapid French. “May I have a word with you?”
Shirley,
hanging slightly back, flashed him a look of gratitude. Frenchy scowled, but a
tinge of fear and embarrassment held him silent. The silence became
embarrassing.
“Can’t you
see,” he growled, "I'm busy?" He started to draw Shirley away.
“But it’s most
important, monsieur."
“Don’t let me
interfere,” Shirley broke in, speaking in English of course. “Does he want to
speak to you?"
Frenchy looked
down on her, his lip curling. "So you do
understand French, after all."
The girl
reddened, and the light was not too dim to see it. “It’s plain enough he wants
something that doesn’t concern me.”
“If you
please, miss,” Lyster said in English, looking at her for the first time. “Just
for a few minutes.” He glanced about; he had no wish, at that moment
particularly, to be seen by The Skunk.
Shirley
released her hand from Frenchy’s arm, and Lyster, as if it were settled,
stepped into her place. Laying his hand on the arm Shirley had dropped, he
directed their way to a side-street that led along the deep, empty course of
the river.
“Surely,” he
chided, in a low voice, “you aren't fool enough to take up with that girl again!”
“Wot’s the
matter with her—if I can stand her?" Frenchy demanded belligerently.
“I warned
you.”
“You didn’t.
Go on, spill it.”
“She’s
trailing you.”
Frenchy
jeered. “You said so. But it ain't no news to me. I can add two and two. If you
hadn’t butted in she’d be on the spot damn soon! I don’t see why she’d be after
me, but I ain’t takin’ no chances, I ain’t.”
“The French
police,” Lyster warned, “have cunning ways. That girl can talk French as well
as you or I. Why does she let on she doesn’t? She’d like to pass as an ordinary
American tourist. Well, I ask you, do American women run about this way alone?”
“You mean
she’s a French dick?”
“You can add
two and two. Do it now. Wasn’t she in Monte
Carlo ? You know as well as I that the police never
lose sight of what goes on in the Casino. Dick or not, that twenty-five
thousand francs is too good to miss. But if you’re going to give her a chance
to get it—or that big guy I saw you with—well, I might as well get it myself.”
They had left
the main street and the crowd and lights far behind, and had come through the
houses to a lonely path that skirted the edge of the river-bed. Fifteen feet
and more below them lay the dry, stony course, edged by thick retaining walls
of stone. Scarcely a light was visible, but the night was bright.
As he snapped
out the final words Lyster lunged forward and threw his arms about Frenchy’s
shoulders. With a snarling curse the man wrenched himself free, tossing Lyster
toward the wall. On the instant his gun was out, and as Lyster tumbled over the
wall he fired.
Frenchy crept
to the wall and looked over. Far below on the stony bed Lyster’s crumpled body
lay in plain sight. Frenchy took aim. At that moment, close beside him, a woman
screamed. And Frenchy straightened and ran.
Lyster was on
his feet with a bound.
“Shirley!
Shirley!”
But she did
not hear. She was running along the path to find the steps that, here and
there, led to the river-bed for the use of wash-women. Recklessly she tumbled
down the first flight she reached.
When she saw
Lyster hurrying toward her she pulled up and laughed, a laugh that puzzled
Lyster.
“Working a
little game of your own, Mr. Lyster?" she said indignantly.
“I’m sorry if
I frightened you, Miss Cringan.
“Well,” she
said, “it’s out of the routine to see a friend, in’ this skeery light, shot at
and fall over a fifteen-foot wall.”
“I’m sorry,”
he repeated, “but I couldn t let him get away with you alone. I had no idea
you’d follow us. Yes, it was a game of my own—to fit a pressing emergency. If
he’d got you out here—well!
“You think I’d
have got into trouble."
“You seem to
delight in trouble. It was no part of our plan for you to be in Banyuls
to-night. I had to do something.”
"You
did,” she said dryly, “a whole succession of things. Are you hurt?”
Lyster felt his
shoulder. “I had no idea it was such a long fall—or so hard at the bottom. I
had to let myself go a bit recklessly; I saw him reach for his gun. It seemed a
grand chance to give him the scare of his life. I think I succeeded—or we did,
between us. Frenchy is sure to clear out now. And, by the way, there’s a train
at eleven o’clock for Collioure. You re taking it. No use to argue—you’re
going. The station is in that direction. Keep going. I’ll be within call.
“Why, Mr.
Lyster,” she mocked, “you're getting positively garrulous.”
Chapter XX An Ally
IN the
meantime Redfern had not lost sight of The Skunk. The latter witnessed from a
safe distance all that happened, but, fortunately, the meeting with Lyster was
too distant to recognize faces. Nevertheless, he followed the pair as they set
out along the street beside the river.
Redfern was in
a quandary. Not a twist of the scene was intelligible to him—Shirley’s laughing
meeting with Frenchy, their departure together. The injection of Lyster was not
so puzzling, but when the two set out along the darker side-street, the
detective was annoyed by evidence of a plan that had not been divulged to him.
He was fair enough, however, to suspect that much of it was unpremeditated, the
result of an emergency.
When The Skunk
started after them Redfern felt better. At least he would be near for anything
that might happen. Second thoughts, however, warned him that the whole affair
might be a plot of the two rogues.
So intent was
he on The Skunk and his own reflections that he did not see Shirley, after
walking a few yards along the main street, turn and follow them all.
Redfern knew
the street they were in. A quarter of a mile it advanced between houses, then
petered out into a mere path that hugged the chasm of the river. It was no
place for Lyster, unarmed and reckless, and inexperienced of such men as these.
The detective felt that something drastic must be done about it.
The Skunk,
creeping along the darker side of the street, did not neglect his back, and
Redfern, at a moment when his quarry glanced behind him, darted across in plain
view. It was enough. The Syrian skipped around the first corner, and by the
time Redfern reached it he was only a shadow far up the street and on the run.
Redfern too
ran, but he made no effort to cut down the distance between them. Satisfied at
last that The Skunk was out of the picture for the night, he hastened back to
take up the trail of the other two.
He heard the
shot far ahead of him, heard Shirley scream, but by the time he reached the spot
Lyster and Shirley had vanished. Assured that at least neither had been killed,
he continued along the path until he overtook them.
From a
distance he and Lyster watched Shirley board the night train for Collioure.
Early next
morning Roland Lyster was at the station, more solemn than ever, impatiently
awaiting the first train east. Alighting half an hour later at Collioure, he
started down the hill to the village. Midway he met Shirley Cringan. She
greeted him in great surprise.
"Mr.
Lyster! Which of us is Mohammed, which the mountain? I was coming to you.” She
saw him frown at her flippancy and she sobered. “What has happened?”
“I want to
talk to you and your mother, Miss Cringan.”
Her laugh
tinkled above the drone of a car climbing the hill, and she tilted her head
teasingly at him. “This is so sudden, Mister Lyster. But mumsie’s the one to
see, all right.”
“I wish you’d
be serious,” he chided, feeling his cheeks flush.
“Well, you
might tell me first what all the news is. It must somehow concern me.”
“It would only
be waste of time—and words. Your mother and you and I will talk about it
together.”
She feigned a
deep solemnity and they descended the hill side by side in complete silence.
Only once, without a word, she swept out her arm toward the sparkling blue sea
beyond the village. Little wavelets rippled the surface, and a flight of
water-birds swept in a flowing sheet across the horizon. The village was fresh
and clean, striking contrast to its neighbour Banyuls.
At the door of
the house Shirley stopped.
“You still
insist on surprising me?”
“Surprising
you?” he repeated, puzzled.
“Springing it
on me before mumsie—whatever it is.”
Queenie
Cringan appeared at the door before Lyster could reply.
“Why, Mr.
Lyster—Shirley!” She placed her hands on her hips. “It isn’t possible we’re
going to be favoured with our daughter’s society to-day! Soon we’ll have to be
introduced to her.”
Shirley swept
past her, head up.
“Mr. Lyster is
so mysterious this morning, mumsie."
"He’s got
something to say, and it isn’t fit to be said before an innocent girl without
her mother around. All right,” tossing her hat on a couch, “fire away.
Mumsie’ll censor it.”
“Mrs.
Cringan,” Lyster began, “I want you to keep your daughter away from
Banyuls."
Shirley’s lips
parted in surprise, then her face flushed angrily.
“Wouldn’t it
be well, especially for Uncle Nathan's valet, to let the Cringans decide that
for themselves?" she asked coldly. “They can attend to their own
business”.
Lyster bowed.
“That’s precisely what I ask. This affair is Redfern’s and mine alone.”
“And my
uncle’s—and therefore mine, if I wish it."
“Tut, tut!”
Queenie held up her hands to silence them. “Mr. Lyster, I quite agree with you.
But,” pathetically, “if you knew the number of things I know I should do but
can’t!” But it was not Queenie Cringan’s habit to grieve. “At least I can give
you some advice—from long experience: don’t ever marry and raise a family.” She
threw a hand out helplessly toward Shirley.
“You flatter
Mr. Lyster, mumsie," Shirley said scornfully. “Besides, you waste words.
Mr. Lyster is far too comfortable tied to Uncle Nathan's apron-strings to
assume any such responsibilities. Don’t you see the purpose of this visit,
mumsie? It’s all a nice extravagant holiday for him, and anything that
threatens to shorten it arouses his indignation, of course.”
“Do you call
the affair of last night an ingredient of a nice holiday, Miss Cringan?” Lyster
demanded.
She waved a
finger at him. “You know you never had a more thrilling time in your life.”
Queenie
Cringan looked from one to the other with questioning eyes. “What happened last
night, may I ask? All I know is that Shirley came home at an indecent hour—as
usual.”
“A real movie
stunt, mumsie—without cameras. Perhaps I do Mr. Lyster injustice, after all, in
accusing him of lack of ambition.”
Lyster ignored
it. “May I ask what you have to do with shortening my ‘holiday,’ as you call
it, whether you keep out of the affair or not?”
“You don’t
wish new ideas. You don’t wish the help I can give. Anything that would shorten
the chase, simplify it—”
“Simplify?
Mrs. Cringan, if you and your daughter only knew how her interference threatens
to complicate things!”
“I helped you
at Monte Carlo ,”
Shirley flamed. “You said I did. And I’ve done a certain amount at Banyuls. You
even approved of my plans.”
Lyster forbore
reminding her that the plans were largely his. “We used you because you
insisted.”
“I still
insist. Why is it so different now? That little affair last night—”
“Pardon me,
it’s very different now. Half a dozen hours ago there were two of us to protect
you. Now I’m alone.”
“Alone?”
“Exactly.
Frenchy has skipped out and Redfern is after him.”
Queenie
demanded the story of the night before, and Shirley, making light of it, told
her. “I played a lone part, mumsie, perfectly. I was the one female character
in the caste, and I did what was expected of me—I screamed at the right place.”
“And there are
a hundred places where a scream may spoil everything,” Lyster objected. “Last
night it happened to fit in.”
“I may fit in
again, don’t you think?”
Lyster shook
his head stubbornly. “I must be free for my work.” The significance of it came
home to him when he saw Shirley laughing.
“Don’t worry
about me,” she said. “I’ll stay under the bright lights hereafter. Mumsie, I
put it to you: here’s Mr. Lyster, Uncle Nathan’s agent, left alone on a big
task he cannot hope to carry through alone. He knows why he can’t, so take my
word for it. Now see: when he fails, when he hasn’t the luck of last night,
there won’t be anyone to take care of the corpse. Uncle would be awfully put
out.”
Queenie
Cringan shook her head hopelessly. “You don’t seem to know Shirley, Mr. Lyster.
You’d have had some chance of attaining your end if you hadn't talked about the
danger of it. I’ve given my daughter everything she desired, that I could
afford. I've never been able to give her excitement mixed with danger. You
have. And what lies ahead looks even to me to be packed with it. If you’d only
seen me alone first I’d have shown you how to go about it. You didn’t.” She
sighed and flung out her hands. “Well, there it is. I’ve troubles of my own.”
“Indeed you
have, mumsie.” Shirley took her mother by the shoulder and ushered her to the
door. “Daddy will want your advice on that ultramarine blue, and for goodness’ sake
steer him off violet.”
Queenie went
with a helpless laugh.
“At any rate,”
Shirley said, as she closed the door and took a chair in a business-like way,
“we’ve got what we set out to do; we’ve frightened Frenchy into flight. And,
having set out to do it, you must have been prepared for it—or you should have
been. Whence the surprise—the new move? After what I’ve seen the last couple of
nights in Banyuls—”
“Were you
there any night but last night?” Lyster demanded.
“I was there
when you and Frenchy had your little talk, after he’d split a bottle with The
Skunk. Anyone could see then that Banyuls had ceased to be the haven Frenchy
anticipated. . . . And now where will he make for?”
"We
must—I must leave that to Redfern.”
A slight smile
crossed Shirley’s lips at the plural pronoun, but she dropped her eyes demurely
to the tip of one shoe. “So it means that you’re left all alone to trail The
Skunk?”
“What else was
there to do?”
“And The Skunk
is the most dangerous of the lot.”
“That’s why
you must stay out of it, Miss Cringan.”
“So you said.
As I see it, it’s another reason why I must offer my services. No, listen.” She
was serious enough now. “You’re taking up alone the trail of a devil, a clever
one, a man who knows you and who, with his suspicious nature, will suspect you
if he sees you again. Don’t forget that last night his suspicions were aroused;
and if he recognized you with Frenchy—”
“I don’t think
he could have—there was no one near enough. Redfern, too, is certain of it.”
“Then why did
he follow?”
Lyster had no
convincing answer to that.
“Even if he
didn’t recognize you, the warning you gave him in Monte Carlo will make him doubt you. Don’t
you see how that will handicap you? The Skunk will either move on—and if he
does he’ll vanish—or he’ll get rid of you by more violent means. That’s where I
fit in. You can’t go on alone. Besides, how can we keep track of you, if you
have to keep track of The Skunk alone? See what almost happened last night.
Suppose you took sick. Suppose you needed help in an emergency—even the little
I can give.”
Her face was
pale with the earnestness of her plea, and Lyster, who had never seen her like
that before, listened without grasping much of what she said. He came to
himself, to see her eyeing him inquiringly.
“The more you enlarge
on its dangers, Miss Cringan, the more determined you make me to keep you out
of it. One thing, it makes the job worth while, an ambition even you might not
condemn. But what a fine ambition it would be to let you share the
danger!"
“Let me decide
about that. Now, Mr. Lyster, I’m not dropping out. Do I continue with your
consent or without it? Do we work together and accomplish something, or are we
against each other—with me probably gumming the works?”
He saw she was
immovable. Her jaw was set, and she sprang to her feet and went to the window
to stare out to sea, one foot tapping the carpet. Lyster too rose and paced
about the room. He felt so helpless, so limp in this unexpected emergency.
Shirley whirled about.
“Why do you
worry? You know Uncle Nathan wants nothing so badly as to get those men. . . .
Unless it’s you back safe and sound. He can’t get along without you now.” She
came and stood with her hands resting on his arm. “Take me along, please. I
promise to obey orders, to take no unreasonable chances. Any order I disobey,”
she corrected, “will be for good and sudden reason.
“Mr. Lyster, I
can’t stay here, I just can’t. And you know I shouldn’t. It’s no place for a
girl. Collioure has had its effect already—you think so yourself or you wouldn’t
be so—so nasty. I’m too young, yes, and too pretty, to live through it without
disaster. Or I’m too weak-minded to resist it, if you like. They think they
want to paint. They don’t. It’s a club of cynics, of misanthropes, of
mis-everything but themselves and their petty accomplishments.”
She stormed to
the door and threw it open. “Mumsie! Oh, mumsie!” Her clear young voice echoed
through the house.
Queenie
Cringan hurried in, and Shirley, feet braced, stood before her.
“Mumsie, lift
the lid a little—for once. Tell him the truth. Tell him something of the true
Collioure—what it looks like to you, what it is sure to do to the morons who
live here. Let loose, just this time.”
“Why—why—”
Queenie stared at them, her face working pitifully.
Shirley caught
her arm and shook her. “Go on. Out with it—for my sake. This is your chance to
save me. Would you have chosen this place, or any ‘art’ colony in the world, to
bring your daughter up in?”
A quick look
of pain crossed her mother’s face, and her eyes were wet. Then slowly: “It may
be—good—for your father, dearie. He’s doing so well—we hope.”
Shirley
touched the quivering lips to silence. “That’s enough. I’m sorry, mumsie, but
it had to be done.” Gently she showed her mother out.
“Well?” she
asked, crossing the room to stand before Lyster. Her own eyes were wet.
He made no
reply.
“You make
things so—so damned hard for a girl!” she complained. “You’re so hard to move.”
“I used to think I was,” he murmured.
Chapter XXI An Escape
SHIRLEY
CRINGAN took up her abode in the hotel at the end of the breakwater in Banyuls.
It was off by itself, at the west end of the village, and offered seclusion and
a chance to meet Lyster unobserved. Her presence was readily explained by the
box of paints and folding stool she carried everywhere. Artists, especially
English artists, are a passing part of the local life of every quaint spot in Europe , and Collioure was wont to spray them over the
district.
At that
Shirley Cringan was no mean artist. She had taken lessons from her father, so
that she had no fear of being detected in merely playing a role.
The scene she
chose to paint was the west end of the harbour, with its vari-coloured cliff
rising steeply behind the aquarium, and a jumble of brown rocks visible through
the spray that dashed over the far side of the breakwater. She opened her
chair, therefore, and set up her easel on the beach before the main street,
where she was in a position to see everyone that passed and all that happened.
A visit to the
little wine-shop beneath Frenchy’s home assured Lyster that the man was gone.
Gone on business, they told him, big business, of course, since he was almost
an American. It left Lyster free to concentrate on The Skunk. The Syrian, he
was convinced, would not linger in Banyuls without his old companion in crime.
That was where
Shirley was to justify herself.
For a day
nothing was seen of The Skunk, and Lyster began to tremble for the success of
his quest. He could not imagine anyone hiding for a whole day in such a small
village as Banyuls except deliberately, and if The Skunk was sufficiently
alarmed for that he would leave without delay.
It was Shirley
saw him first. Her wandering eye picked him out as he climbed the hill toward
Frenchy’s old home, and she gathered up her equipment and walked back to the
hotel. Lyster, watching from the breakwater, saw the arranged signal and was
relieved. That night they met.
Next day she
seated herself on the beach nearer the street and set to work with her paints,
and as the fishing-boats came in a crowd collected about her. She feigned not
to notice it, but not a face escaped her.
At last The
Skunk strolled down on the shingle.
She saw that
he watched her with more than casual interest, yet she could not be sure that
he recognized her as the girl Frenchy had been with for a few minutes on the
night of the dance.
Running her
eye impersonally over the crowd, she asked in stumbling French: “Does anyone
speak English?”
For a few
moments no one replied. The French, unlike the Italians, are more intent on a
foreigner’s mistakes in the language than on his meaning. The question was
repeated in another form, almost equally imperfect, and a woman pointed to The
Skunk.
“Il parle Anglais,” she said.
The Skunk
tried to shrink out of sight, but the crowd separated, leaving a clear lane
between him and Shirley.
“You speak
English?” she asked, with a friendly smile.
“I spik—” he
began in his practised jargon.
But when the
crowd, recognizing the dialect, laughed, he said: “Yes, I understand it,” and
frowned.
“I scarcely
know a word of French,” Shirley said, ignoring the change of tone. “I want to
ask them if some morning one of the fishing-boats would be good enough to draw
up just there, between me and the cliff over there. I’d like to work it into
the picture—to give it life. You see what I mean?”
Sullenly The
Skunk translated, and two grizzled sailors pushed forward with offers.
“He says he’ll
do it to-morrow,” The Skunk interpreted, pointing to the older man, and
immediately pushed away through the crowd. After a smiling “merci” Shirley went on with her
painting.
In the
afternoon she met The Skunk face to face on the street.
“It was so
good of you to help me out this morning,” she said. “You didn’t give me a
chance to thank you. You’ve lived in America , I see.”
“Not long,” he
growled, and would have passed on had she not stood directly before him and
continued to speak.
“It’s so
pleasant to be able to talk to someone at last. I’m having a terrible time
making myself understood, and I simply can’t make out what they say to me. Is
it French? I’m muscle-bound making gestures. I’m American—lived out in Los Angeles . Do you know
it?”
The Skunk did
not. He would not have known any place Shirley mentioned. Then he was gone.
Next day
Shirley was in her place once more, except that she was nearer the street. The
boat was drawn up where she had indicated. The Skunk did not make an
appearance. But in the afternoon he passed, and Shirley, gathering up her
paints and stool, ran after him.
“I just can’t
let you pass,” she laughed, “without the one chance I have to speak my own
language again. I’ll forget it if you don’t help me out. It’s desperately
lonesome, too.”
“Then why did
you come?”
“Because—because
it’s such a romantic spot.”
He made a
grimace. “There was an Englishman—or an American—back there in an hotel a few
days ago. You should talk to him.” He pointed through an archway to the street
on which Redfern's hotel was located. “They say there’s another at the big
hotel on the hill. I haven’t seen him. You needn’t forget your English.”
“Will you come
and have a cup of coffee with me?” she pleaded.
“Coffee!” he
snorted. “My dear girl, you won’t like the coffee you get here, not after America ."
“Then tea—how
about tea?”
The Skunk
laughed. “They’ll serve it in a glass—if they know what you mean. If you want
anything to drink that isn’t wine, ask for citronade
or limonade. And you needn’t be
afraid to drink alone." Without so much as a bow he left her.
Shirley looked
after him. “Such a slap!” she said to herself. “To be turned down—and by him!
Between The Skunk and Roland Lyster I’m on a fair way to humility.”
“The
perfume-seller,” she opined to Lyster that night, when they met on the
breakwater, “is getting touchy about me.”
“For Heaven’s
sake don’t overdo it,” Lyster pleaded miserably.
“How can I?”
“You can make
him suspect that you wish him to suspect you.”
She threw up
her head. “I lack your fine Italian hand, is that it?” Then she remembered her
promise. “All right, what do you wish me to do?”
He didn’t
quite know—except the one thing she refused—and he stumbled as he talked,
realizing suddenly how dependent he had grown on her, how little he would be
able to accomplish without her or Redfern. She heard him through soberly.
Next day they
thought they understood why The Skunk lingered after Frenchy was gone. Shirley
saw him enter the little wine-shop beneath Frenchy’s old home. The latter had
gone without informing his old friend, and The Skunk was trying to trace him.
Their
suspicions were confirmed two days later when, The Skunk not having been seen
in the meantime, Shirley boldly went to his stopping-place and asked for him.
Yes, monsieur had gone, the old woman did not know where, but he had left at
half-past seven in the morning, so that he must have taken the train west.
Shirley,
without concealment now, made for Lyster’s hotel. And later in the morning
Lyster himself made inquiries, first of the old woman where The Skunk had had a
room, then of the stationmaster. The old woman elaborated proudly on having
made monsieur pay a week in advance before he left, but it took a deal of time
and patience to elicit the information that the man they sought had spoken once
of Barcelona and Palma. The stationmaster confirmed the western destination.
A skirmish
with maps located Palma .
A line of boats ran from Barcelona to the
Balearic Islands, landing at Palma , on the island of Majorca .
That night
they set out, Lyster torn between his anxiety about The Skunk and his
helplessness to restrain Shirley from what, he felt, was to her only another
exciting escapade. Shirley was disarmingly demure—and that did not add to
Lyster’s peace of mind. At Barcelona
they parted company. Shirley took the night boat for Palma .
Chapter XXII A Stern Chase
IT was not
quite as simple as that. After much uneasy protesting and criticizing on
Lyster’s part, it was agreed that it would not be wise to travel to Palma together. And
Shirley earned her point that she had better go first, partly because “Barcelona is no city for a
young girl alone,” partly because as yet she played the major part in their
scheme, and it was unnecessary as part of that scheme to conceal herself as it
was for Lyster.
Too late
Lyster discovered that the next boat did not leave for two days, a period of
fretting and selfcensure, while he wandered up and down the Rambla, wondering
why he had been so easy.
Why should
Shirley have preceded him? How could he have forgotten that for two days she
would face the dangers of the chase alone, the very dangers that had made him
so insistent that she should leave everything to him and Redfern? She had
succeeded in making him see things through her eyes, had, indeed, from the
first, taken charge of the whole affair.
Two days of
inactivity, when he could hear nothing from her, could not be near if she
should need him! And she would be alone on a foreign island, without a word of
Spanish at her command! To Lyster it was two days of self-humiliation, of
agony.
Though the
boat did not leave till nine at night, he was aboard by half-past six, having
snatched a night meal that left no memory. As the little ship struck the open
beyond the breakwater he was glad of the strong wind that blew and the rough
sea that dashed over the bow. He did not undress.
In the early
morning light the boat slipped into Palma
harbour and drew up against a wharf lined with hotel runners and carrajue drivers. The great cathedral
lay like a giant beetle close to the shore, and the mountains backing the town
were white.
A strange and
absorbing scene, but Lyster saw none of it. He was searching the faces along
the wharf for one that had not been out of his mind for two days—and much
longer. And the face was not The Skunk’s.
Shirley was
not there.
They had, from
a Cook’s list, selected the Grand Hotel for Shirley, while Lyster would put up
at the Alhambra .
The two hotels were, they were told, in the city and close together, not out at
El Terreno, where the tourists congregated. The Skunk, they decided, would
avoid the tourist hotels.
Having dropped
his suit-cases at the Alhambra ,
Lyster hurried to the Grand. Discretion, secrecy be damned! A cloud seemed to
have settled over the city, a sultry stillness, so that he breathed fast and
perspired.
The clerk at
the Grand spoke halting English. Yes, there had been an American girl there,
but only for a day—no, two days; she had left that very morning. He did not
know where she had gone, perhaps back to Barcelona —or
to Iviza . The latter suggestion was made with
some confidence, as if a girl like Shirley Cringan was bound to choose some
outlandish place like Iviza , the third island
of the group.
“But surely
she said where she was going!”
“Not to me. I
was not on duty when she went.” The clerk dropped his face over a newspaper, as
if nothing more was to be had from him. Lyster was not going to register, that
was plain.
After several
misunderstandings, some coldness, a certain amount of irritation, and a stagger
at Spanish that failed, Lyster elicited the information that the clerk who was
on duty when Shirley departed, and who might know something, had gone to
Pollensa for a couple of days. Anyway, what was all the fuss about? A guest had
come and gone. She had paid her bill. What more? If there was any trouble about
it for the young man, well, there was always mañana to go more fully into the affair.
Lyster prowled
about the city. He visited the Ingles Hotel, the Mediterranee and the Victoria at El Terreno,
but Shirley Cringan was unknown to them. In a fever he began to make inquiries
about the long trip across the island to Pollensa, where the clerk who might
know was visiting, but no one could tell him where to find exactly the man he
sought.
Accordingly he
was forced to wait, all the time wandering about, making inquiries, fussing,
working himself into a panic. Reason warned him at last that he was making
himself a nuisance.
Everything was
explained with the return of the absent hotel clerk—except the casual
carelessness of his substitute. Shirley had left a letter for Lyster, and the
clerk had thrust it into the “H” box, curiously enough where a “Halton” letter
should be put, and Lyster had not had imagination enough to ask for it.
The letter
contained only a score of words, scrawled almost illegibly:
“Flying to Algiers on a moment’s
notice. Pick me up there. At least they’ll speak French.—S.”
Lyster was out
of the door before he had finished reading. He knew of the air mail line
between Marseilles and Algiers ,
stopping at Palma
for passengers and mail. Ignoring his suit-cases at the Alhambra , he rushed to the harbour. The plane
he had seen alight on the water not two hours ago.
He was in time
to see it taxi across the bay and rise in a graceful curve toward Algiers !
For the first
time in his life Roland Lyster exhausted a vocabulary of oaths unconsciously
acquired in four or five countries. The blast ceased abruptly, and fear crowded
out his anger and disappointment. Algiers
now! Shirley had come alone to Palma —and gone on
alone to North Africa !
All day he
fretted. His mind dwelt on the implications of that short note. The Skunk, too,
had gone to Algiers ,
and since Shirley would not dare to take the same plane, he must have gone two
days earlier. Shirley would be searching Algiers
for him—alone.
There was no
Cook’s office in Palma ,
but another tourist office where they spoke French and a little English
informed him of the times of boats and planes. The next plane did not leave for
Algiers for
three days!
He could
return to Barcelona , take train to Marseilles , and cross from
there by boat, but that would gain him nothing. There was, of course, the
chance that he might be able to charter a plane at Barcelona ,
but that was too uncertain, and its arrival in Algiers would create a stir.
It meant that
Shirley would be on her own for ten days, with a murderous gangster to contact!
Not knowing
where he went, he found himself entering the Alhambra Hotel. The clerk beckoned
to him.
“A cable for
you, Mr. Halton.”
Lyster seized
it. It was from Shirley.
“Gone on to Tunis ,” it said.
And he might
have caught that plane whose roar was scarcely out of hearing, and have reached
Algiers to find
it empty!
“When did this
arrive?” he inquired.
“Last night.
The other clerk forgot to mention it.”
Lyster ground
his teeth, and after a furious look rushed back to the tourist agency. As he
climbed the slope a plane soared over his head, swooping toward the bay.
“Where does
that plane go?” he demanded of the clerk.
“It’s the
return plane from Algiers , starting in an hour
for Marseilles .”
In a flash
Lyster had boats and trains and planes fixed in his mind and was running for
his hotel. He would fly to Marseilles and catch
a boat straight to Tunis , saving two days over
plane to Algiers and train to Tunis .
The pilot of
the plane had information for him too. The Skunk had gone to Algiers
with him, and in their talk had spoken of going on to Tunis . It was from him, the pilot, that
Shirley had extracted the same information.
“Those
American girls!” the pilot sighed. “They don’t let a man throw them down, do
they? And, by God, she was too pretty for him! Turned me down cold too, she
did.” He braced his shoulders proudly.
“I’d smack you
one on the jaw,” Lyster fumed to himself, “if I didn’t need you so badly.”
Chapter XXIII
Tunis
For the
thousandth time he upbraided himself for the spineless part he had played. For
that, too, he would have to answer to Nathan Hornbaker.
Camels—veiled
women—red-fezzed Arabs—turbaned Bedouins—busy Israelites—silent
Italians—negroes of a dozen tints—French police—outlandish soldiers dirt and
noise—shouting taxi-drivers—a beautifully-treed boulevard sweeping past—the
walls of a city enclosed in a city. It all flickered before his eyes with only
one significance: where in all this was Shirley?
He had chosen
an hotel at random from the driver’s patter, and his first concern—with his
suit-cases thumped against his legs to remind him that he had not paid his
fare—was to examine the register.
Shirley's name
was not there; there was no American girl at the hotel. She would have no
reason for an alias, since the robbers, now that Toni was dead, would never
connect the Cringans with the Hornbakers!
Without
pausing even to look at his room, Lyster sent his bags up and started out to
find her.
It was not
difficult. At the second hotel he visited there on the register was her easy
scroll.
The Majestic
was a large, showy hostelry that enabled tourists to send imposing picture
postcards back home, its clientele the sort who record their progress by such a
display. But, having found where she was staying, Lyster dared not make too
many inquiries. He was told by the head porter, a large man in a long
frock-coat loaded with gold braid, that Miss Cringan had gone out early, as she
always did. And his extended hand more than hinted for the pourboire befitting such an hotel. Lyster, aware that the man might
prove useful, paid and took a seat in the lobby.
It was one
o’clock before Shirley, weary and spiritless, appeared. She carried her
sketching kit and dropped it in the first empty chair with a sigh that tore at
Lyster’s heart. He hurried to her.
She exhibited
no surprise, but her body visibly relaxed, and her head sank restfully against
the back of the chair.
“Well,” she
said, with a thin smile, “you look a bit haggard yourself, Mr. Lyster. Have you
missed your breakfast?”
He dropped
beside her and peered into her face. “I’m—just—sorry.”
“Why should
you be? The Skunk and I are much too fast for a stern chase. Incidentally he
was too fast for me. I’ve lost him. But,” bracing against her fatigue, “he’s
somewhere in Tunis .
And now, if you please, a bit to eat, and then sleep—sleep.” She roused herself
and tipped the sketching kit to the floor. “I’ve got neuritis, too, lugging
that damned thing around. You can carry on now. I’m for the downy—till
to-morrow.”
They lunched
together at the hotel. Lyster, as usual, was tongue-tied before her, stricken
by her exhaustion, the heavy eyes and limp lips, shamed by the ignominious part
she had forced on him. She saw it in his eyes.
“Don’t look
like that!” she pleaded. “You’ve nothing to blame yourself for. Can’t you see
I’m trouble enough to myself without having to worry about you?”
“I’m so
sorry,” was all he could say.
“Yes,” she
agreed, “I am a bit weary. How far have I wandered?” She stifled a yawn. “How
long have I slept? I don’t know. Oh, well, I’m young. And,” more brightly,
“this isn’t a joy-ride, is it? . . . But I hope you’ve enjoyed your travels.”
She did not look at him; her eyes were on a dish of creamed spinach.
“It’s been
agony,” he cried, “every moment of it . . . except when I received the note you
left at the Grand Hotel in Palma.”
“Such a snippy
note, too. Did they tell you I was so rushed I hadn't time to pack? I left
everything but what I could throw in a bag. Even then I had to bribe a boatman
to take me out to the aeroplane after it had started to taxi, and I just
managed to make it. We had a rocky passage, too. I was disgustingly sick. It
wasn’t a good start.”
“But how did
you keep in touch with The Skunk?”
She told her
story. She had wasted no time in Palma .
From an Englishman who ran a sort of general agency for everything she got a
list of the native hotels. There were not many, and she had little difficulty
in running down the man she was after.
But The Skunk
had checked out. Two days had already passed. On the way back to the hotel she
saw the little tender landing a passenger from the plane, and she hurried down
and talked—in French—to the boatman. It was a lucky interview, for she learned
that a passenger who could not be mistaken had taken the previous plane for Algiers . Thereupon she had
rushed back to the hotel to leave a note for Lyster and grab a bag, and had
almost missed the plane.
At Algiers she had less
trouble. Tracing the aeroplane by which The Skunk had crossed the
Mediterranean, she learned that the Syrian had talked of going straight to Tunis .
“That was all
I needed,” she said between yawns. “We were expecting him to make for Tunis , so I jumped on
the next train and followed. And now,” her eyes half closed, “if you’ll hand
across about five thousand francs I’ll buy myself a toothbrush and a fresh pair
of stockings and make myself look respectable. The Grand Hotel at Palma owes me quite a bit
for what I left. There are a couple of fair stores here, though I expect to
spend more in the souks. You must see the souks!
“That’s the
whole story. The rest is just one long sleep—and thank God someone turned up.
Settle the bill, will you? I’ve been neglecting to pay, since I had only two
hundred francs in my pocket when I arrived. And,” as she rose from the table, “would
you be good enough to look me up here to-night when I’ve slept myself back to
something resembling sanity? Have I been talking wildly? I’m too tired to know
what I’m saying. It’s been so thrilling meeting you again, Mr. Lyster.”
And Roland
Lyster, watching her sway from the dining-room, realized that, as usual, she
had taken charge. What a dub he was with her—yes, and about her! While he had
been worrying himself sick about her, she had been—just tired.
He paid the
bill, made a note of the number of Shirley's room, and went out into the sunlit
streets, to be struck to a staggering surprise that Tunis was what it was, “le blanc burnous du Prophète.” Until an
hour ago it had been only another city to search.
Roaming along
the Avenue Jules Ferry, with its beautiful boulevard of trees, to the Avenue de
France, he came at last to the Port de France, the ancient gateway to the
walled city, and for a long time he stood in its shadow watching the teeming
life that washed past him.
Vivid, alien,
ceaseless; black and white and brown; Arab and Bedouin, Israelite and Turk,
East Indian and negro, with here and there a Frenchman or a tourist;
money-changers, guides, powerful porters with their incredible burdens slung in
ropes over their backs; sly women in haiks,
with seductively manipulated veils; dusky giants in burnous or gandourah; a
beautiful, silver-trimmed Arab charger; a funeral cortège, and a wedding party
in carriages.
For an hour,
his mind relieved of its more pressing anxiety, he lost himself in the kaleidoscope
scene. Strolling through into the Bourse, he found himself in the old
slave-market, with an hotel straight before him, the British Consulate on his
right, and a line of shops along the left side. And on either side of the hotel
a narrow, mysterious, dark little street diving away with its hordes into more
mysterious depths.
Struck by a
sudden idea, he rushed back to his hotel, paid the bill, and in half an hour
was settled in the hotel within the walled city. Only then, seated before the
projecting window, looking straight down into the Port de France, the one
entrance on that side to the walled city, did he realize how wisely he had
chosen. All the life of Tunis
used that gate. And it was the living part of the city alone that had brought
him there.
More mature
consideration weakened his assurance. Would he recognize The Skunk amid that
never-ending procession? Here were thousands who in stature resembled the
Syrian, and if the latter chose to assume the slightest disguise only close
contact would pierce it. Another worry: with such an absorbing scene before
him, would he be able to concentrate on his task?
He went out to
the French city, found a café, drank a glass of café au lait, and set out for the narrow streets that led to the
souks. In a few minutes he was completely lost, but, refusing to ask directions
and defying the advances of innumerable bazaar merchants seated in their narrow
stalls, he rambled about. Only as darkness fell did he find his way back by
following the crowd.
Shirley was at
dinner when he arrived. He had not eaten since noon, but he felt no hunger as
he sat in the lobby where he could see her at her meal. She saw him almost as
soon as he entered, but she merely nodded and continued through the courses,
taking her time, not even looking at him again. At the end she lit a cigarette
and sat back. She was dressed in a new old gold evening dress, and even in an
hotel that went extravagantly to dress she shone.
Lyster noticed
that, though she lit the cigarette, after the first two or three puffs she let
it go out.
It was almost
an hour after his entrance before she came to him, still carrying the dead
cigarette. With a lazy smile—she was still tired—she waved him back to his seat
and dropped on the couch beside him. Neither spoke. The cigarette rolled over
and over in her fingers as she fixed her eyes on a floor-lamp and appeared not
to notice their silence. Lyster eyed her furtively.
“Well,” she
said at last, facing him, “do you like it?”
“An exquisite
shade,” he murmured.
“That’s nice.
I found it in a duck of a place on the Avenue. But, you know, it’s something
more than a shade; it’s a dress. Never mind. I know its faults, but if you’d
been travelling and living for a week in one outfit, right through to the skin,
you’d kid yourself into thinking that anything new is entrancing. I did. You’ve
confirmed the subsequent disillusion. Oh, well, I’ve a thousand or two left for
another—and now you for a bank. Got a fresh cigarette?”
He drew out an
enamelled case and held
a match for her. His fingers trembled.
“You’re not
quite yourself, are you?” she asked, looking away. “We’re both off colour—till
we get settled and rested . . . I suppose you’ve been doing the sights—while I
slept.”
“It’s a very
interesting old city,” he said.
“I thought—I
feared—it might be. But, you know, there’s more in this than Tunis , and you and I running about together
in a shocking way. Have you seen enough of le
blanc burnous to get to work?”
“I’m not
likely to forget that,” he told her stiffly. “I’ve one reminder—my responsibility
for you.”
She waved an
indifferent hand. “Don’t let that worry you. You’re responsible for nothing. I
forced my way in. In your stubborn, unimaginative way, your English way, you
did your darnedest to keep me out. . . . There are several things you have yet
to learn about me.”
“As you’re
talking, yes! ” he retorted shortly.
“Oh, that!”
She waved her cigarette airily. It had gone out again. “That was just
introductory. I was merely anticipating your own conscience. Some of these days
you’re going to have an awful time with it. You’ve that kind of a conscience.”
“Why should it
trouble me?”
“Well, it may
be the custom in your country for young couples to trot away for a holiday
together—week-ends, and all that—but surely you know the United States well
enough by this time to be aware that it just isn’t done—except in Hollywood—and
Reno. Yes, I know all you’ll say: we make a fetish of respectability—in
theoretical ethics; and then we go on to break every law of decency with the
eagerness of a child playing truant. But it’s there—the ostentation of decency,
I mean. I suppose,” with a sigh, “you’ve been just long enough in America
to get confused about morals. But in about a day and a half I expect you to
break out as a male Mrs. Grundy. I’m just hastening the attack, so we can get
it over and be free to concentrate on our work.”
"I'm
afraid,” was all he said, “you’ve slept too long this afternoon, Miss Cringan.
You’re too farsighted for me.”
“Have it your
own way, Mr. Lyster. But there’s one place I draw the line: you must put up at
some other hotel.”
He studied
her, uncertain whether she was teasing or not.
"That’s a
point I’ve done some anticipating about. I’m staying almost a mile away.”
“So proper. I
knew you’d think of it.”
“But I didn’t.
I—”
"Of course,
we might call it expediency rather than inherent virtue, if you will. We
mustn’t forget The Skunk is presumably the purpose of our wanderings. But I see
how all this shocks you. Well,” briskly, “how did you spend your afternoon?”
“I wish you’d
be serious,” he protested.
"I've
heard that so often. And I wish you’d be less serious.” She straightened and
frowned at him. "But that would be too much to expect. Some day I'm going
to shock you terribly; I could almost die happy then.”
"Your
wants are so few—and so easily satisfied.”
“You conceal
it admirably, Mr. Lyster. By the way, I suppose you cabled Cook’s, at Monte Carlo , to see what
has happened to Mr. Redfern?”
“I—I quite
forgot.”
“Yet you
expect me to sit and take orders, nothing more! Don't you think it might be
well, just for its news-value, to know something about our detective friend’s
movements?”
"I'll do
it right away,” he promised, realizing once more that beneath her banter lay a
steadfastness of purpose and a depth of discernment that often made him feel
shallow.
He rose, his
eyes on the head porter, but she caught his sleeve.
“I don’t wish
you to do anything rash,” she said. “Do I need to remind you that any money
that gets into the hands of hotel porters the world over sticks there? We want
that cablegram to reach its destination. Now, I suppose, the decks are cleared
for our real task. I take it you lost no time this afternoon—while I slept.”
“No—no. But I
found a room that may be useful.” He told her proudly of his location just
within the Port de France, and was surprised when she shook her head sadly.
“Then I
suppose I must move,” she said.
“But I don’t
see—”
“I took a room
in the same hotel the first day I came. I never slept there, of course.
Pleasant, sort of exciting location, isn’t it? You’ll enjoy it. Very—exotic. I
won’t need to keep my room now. It’ll be more proper and less expensive.
Fortunately, I got away from Collioure in time.”
“It might have
been better if you’d stayed,” he growled. “I don’t know what has come over you
since you left America .”
“It’s the
ocean voyage,” she laughed. “Salt water is bad for us. That’s why the very
nicest Americans are disliked when they get to Europe .”
Chapter XXIV Another Meeting
THERE followed
a week of more or less undirected wandering, during which Lyster convinced
himself he had no excuse to visit Shirley Cringan again.
The cable had
brought a reply from Redfern, forwarded from Cook’s: “En route New York from Barcelona
with friend. Cheerio.”
Lyster dropped
the cable in an envelope and mailed it to Shirley at the Majestic Hotel. There
was no reply.
Day after day
he wandered about, disturbed that his mind, too, wandered at times. The Skunk,
he was convinced, would take refuge in the native city, but there was an outer
native quarter as well as the walled city, and it meant miles and miles of
streets and hundreds of groups varying in size, as well as crowded
thoroughfares to inspect.
The souks he
found of never-failing interest, and most of the time he spent there. Twice he
saw Shirley. Once he hurried after her, but lost her in the crowd, and was glad
of it.
Then he found
the Souk El Attarine, and with it The Skunk. Rather, The Skunk found him.
Lyster was
strolling through the tangle of narrow streets within the walled city, jostled
by the crowd, making way for the porters, marvelling vaguely at the wealth of
these narrow bazaars, when he came out on a wider, more formal covered street,
one of the souks arched over with a roof from the sun, and holed here and there
to admit the light.
Of tourists in
Tunis there
were few, for the city is off the beaten track, and selfish monopoly of the
wharves keeps out the tourist boats; and the street was wide and dusky, so that
the crowd was less noticeable. He had been over it often enough before, but had
paid no attention to it.
Ahead of him a
group of tourists moved slowly from bazaar to bazaar, the guide pausing before
those from which he, like all his kind, received a commission on purchases.
Lyster watched with a superior smile, near enough to observe the clever
indifference of the guide and the guilelessness of his party.
Someone
touched him on the shoulder, and he turned—to see The Skunk leaning over the
railing of a bazaar and beckoning to him. Restraining his surprise, he entered.
“You’re
American, aren’t you?” The Skunk inquired.
Evidently he
did not recognize Lyster; but the latter took no chances. He peered into The
Skunk’s face, and a frown of struggling memory gathered on his forehead.
“Say, haven’t
we met before? I seem to have seen you—but not exactly under these conditions.”
He scratched his chin thoughtfully. “I know—it was at Monte Carlo !”
The Skunk
started back.
“You no see
me,” he contradicted, in broken English. “You been here long time mebbe.”
Plainly he was trying to place Lyster and, in the interval, taking no chances
himself.
Lyster paid no
attention. He grinned and held out his hand. “It was you all right.” Why, of
course; this was the souk of the perfume-sellers—and he had not thought to give
it special attention! “Don’t you remember? I wouldn’t be here if it hadn’t been
for you. You were selling perfume on the Casino terrace, and you told me of Tunis . You got me
interested. Say, did you get away without the police bothering you? About that
murder, you know.”
The Skunk,
seeing that denial was useless, only winked.
“That’s fine.
You were wise to clear out, as I advised. Those French police! And now I want
to see some of that fine perfume you boasted about—some of your very best.”
Instantly The
Skunk was all business. With a flourish he swept his hand along a shelf laden
with bottles and vials. “Damn it! ” he said fervently,“if it isn’t good to talk
to someone from God’s country. I haven't had a chance to talk real American in
weeks. But,” looking Lyster over more closely, “you don’t look like the real
goods.”
“I was born in
England ,”
Lyster told him. “But America ’s
the country for me. There’s a real he-man land! This is all right for a while,
but it doesn’t last long. I don’t see how you can settle down here. You, too,
have lived in America .”
The Skunk
sighed. “I wish to God I was back there now!”
“Me, too. How
are things going?”
"Just
so-so. There ain’t many tourists this winter, and the season’s about over. This
was my old stand years ago, and it might be worse. I’ve rented it for a
while—something to keep me busy. But in a couple of weeks or so it’s going to
be damned hot, and I guess I’ve got out of the way of it.” He caught hold of
the baggy trousers he wore. “These, too—they ain’t so easy to wear as they were
once, but they’re cooler. You’ll smother in those if you stay much
longer."
“But you want
perfume, and I’m telling the world you’ve come to the right spot. These other
crooks, they’d pull their own mother’s teeth for the gold in them. Perfume—bah!
All they got’s a drop of extract in a pint of alcohol and stuff. Th’ain’t one
tourist in a million knows the difference between extract and essence. And that
gummy stuff they fool the tourist with! Nothing but gelatine and wax!”
He snapped his
fingers loudly, and a negro appeared through a curtain in the darkness at the
rear of the bazaar. The Skunk jerked an order in Arabic, and the negro, bowing
deeply, retired on silent feet.
“You’ll have a
cup of coffee? Sure you will! Turkish coffee. You mightn’t like it at first,
but you’ll get to look for it, and it’s part of the game we play in the souks.”
He grinned,
his big mouth widening in an oddly straight line. Lyster could not keep his
eyes from the absurdly small ears of the man.
“Now, me, I
don’t need to fool the tourists—and I wouldn’t try to fool a fellow-countryman
like you. I sell the real stuff; I sell it all over the world. Here’s a bottle
would earn a kiss from any dame.”
He selected
from an upper shelf an eight-ounce bottle containing some liquid of sparkling
amber hue and held it tenderly between finger and thumb, so that the light
played on it.
“One hundred
francs a quarter-ounce. But it’ll last till—well, till you want another girl’s
kiss. I know: I’ve tried it! ” He winked clumsily with both eyes.
Lyster pursed
his lips. “Four dollars for a girl’s kiss? And you couldn’t get away with one
ounce, either. Kisses come high in your world.”
“It doesn’t
cost me a hundred francs, of course. And you can have an ounce for—oh, say two
hundred francs, and that’s giving it away and throwing in the bottle. Eh, what
say? By the way, what’s your name?”
“Call me
Jones,” Lyster answered, with a meaning wink. “I’m forgetting my right name for
a while. It mightn’t be healthy. All right, I’ll take an ounce. And put it in a
ten-dollar box. And do it up strong. I’ll keep it till it’s safe to get back to
America .”
“Expect to
make it soon?” The Skunk asked enviously.
“The minute
things blow over. You don’t think I’d stay away a second longer?”
“No . . . no.”
The Skunk’s eyes were dreamy as he dropped the little bottle in a gaudy
paste-board box and wrapped it in blue paper.
He turned to
take a great brass tray from the negro. On the tray was a brass coffee-pot and
two tiny handle-less cups of native pottery in brass holders. He placed the
tray thoughtfully on an inlaid folding coffee-stand the negro opened.
“No . . . no,”
he repeated. “God, I wish I could get back with you!”
“Why can’t
you?”
The Syrian
shook his head and poured a thick brown liquid from the pot into one of the
cups. Lyster waited until the two cups were filled, then, picking up his own,
slopped some of the steaming fluid over the edge from which he was to drink.
The Skunk saw it and smiled.
“You’re
right—and you’re sure American. But you needn’t be scared here. I’ve taught the
nig. to wash things properly. All you got to be scared of in Tunis is the water and the flies; and the
water’s all right if you draw it yourself in things you’ve washed yourself. The
flies ain’t so bad yet, and they’ve cleaned out most of the sore-eyed beggars.
But you should oughta see the south, down in the desert!”
“Been down
there recently?” Lyster asked, sipping the coffee tentatively.
“Just got back
two days ago. Couldn’t stick it. . . . And even here I’m so homesick I could
cry. I’d give half an arm to be hearing the newsies again, and doging cars, and
meeting the boys for a game. You’re right—a guy with any guts can’t stay away
long.”
He sipped
thoughtfully and smacked his lips.
“Can a guy get
away by himself anywhere else in the world?” he continued. “I don’t think so. And
you’ll find it out, Jones. I’m beginning to think a fellow’s safer back there
than anywhere.”
Lyster said
nothing, but he managed to look sad. The Syrian braced himself, and took a
paper from his pocket.
“This is what
I stopped you for.” He spread the paper on a corner of the coffee-stand. “I got
this to-day from the American consul; it says I have to fill it out if I’m
keeping my American nationality, my citizenship. God, how they keep track of a
guy!”
Lyster scanned
the paper. “I guess that’s so. This is the way they keep track of their
nationals. I’ve just taken out first papers. But how did the consul know you
were here?”
“That’s what’s
bothering me.”
“He must have
seen the papers you signed to rent this place. Yes, that’s it.”
The Skunk
looked happier. “Let’s see, what name did I sign? Oh, yes, it’s there on the
paper. Have I got to answer all them questions?”
“If you wish
to get back some time.”
The Syrian
stumbled to his feet. “You bet I want to get back; I got to get back. I can’t
live here the rest of my days—not now, not after America . And I can’t make half a
living.”
Lyster read
over the questions. “These shouldn’t be hard to answer—”
A chatter of
voices at the door sent the Syrian hastening forward, to greet the party of
tourists returning. The guide was enthusiastically pointing out the perfumes.
"If the
ladies and gentlemen will come into my humble place." The Skunk bowed and
backed away. He snapped his fingers, and the negro appeared.
Lyster went,
pinching the Syrian in a friendly way as he passed.
Chapter XXV A Disappearance
DAY after day
Lyster returned for an hour’s chat with The Skunk, adding to his welcome by
purchases of the perfumes their owner recommended. He even exuded an odour of
jasmine himself.
The Syrian had
not yet filled in the document that worried him.
“I’ve had a
few names in my time,” he explained, “and I ain’t sure what one I used in my
naturalization papers. I haven’t them here.”
Lyster soothed
him by assuring him that the consul would never check up, even if he could.
“Then they
want to know if I’m married, and the woman’s name, and where she is, and all
that. Lots of things I don’t want to tell.”
“Then tell the
truth when you wish to, and fill the rest in anyhow. It’ll just be filed and
forgotten.”
The Skunk
considered. “I’ve been married—two or three times—and I don’t know which one’s
legal. Besides, I don’t remember their names before I married them, and I ain’t
seen any of them in three years. Maybe,” more hopefully, “I won’t need to sign
if I go back soon enough.”
A week later
Lyster sat in the little bazaar, wiping his face.
“Phew, this is
getting hot! I’m not going to be able to stick it much longer. What do you say
to getting out? There can’t be much more business for you till next season.”
The Skunk
shook his head. “I can’t go back yet— if that’s what you mean. And business
ain’t too bad. Those Arab women, they use a lot of perfume. They have to to
keep their men. I guess some of them tickle his nose when they haven’t much for
his eyes. You put four women with one man, like they all have here when they
can afford it, and there’s competition for you. It pays me. Oh, these women!
They’re the same all over the world.”
Lyster was
seated on a camp-stool, his back against one side of the bazaar, where he could
see far down the souk.
“I guess
you’re right, Fazal.” It was the one name The Skunk had given him. “Arab or
English or American, they put it on for the men, eh? . . . There’s that girl
again down there.” He pointed to Shirley, seated on a folding-chair a hundred
yards away, a canvas set up before her on a light easel. “Painting, eh? Must be
English. I’ve seen her there every morning for a week.”
The Skunk
leaned carefully out. He frowned. “I’ve seen her, too, damn her!”
Lyster
regarded him inquiringly, and The Skunk scowled. “Say, you stay here for a few
minutes, will you? I’m going to have a look-see. And, by God, I believe I’m
right!”
He strolled
out, walked in the opposite direction to Shirley, and disappeared at the first
corner. Five or six minutes passed, then, close behind the girl, Lyster saw
him. Slowly he crept nearer, Shirley unconscious of his presence. Lyster held
himself ready.
But he was not
called on to act, for presently The Skunk turned and left. He reached the
bazaar by the same route he had used to approach Shirley from behind. His face
was black as a thundercloud.
Lyster
inquired what was up.
For answer The
Skunk shook his fist in the direction of the girl. “It’s her, damn her eyes,
the very same girl!”
“What girl do
you mean?”
“She’s
following me. I saw her in Monte Carlo ,
and then—another place. She tagged after me. And now she’s here.”
“So she’s one
of the girls who won’t let you forget her?” Lyster teased.
“That skirt? I
never snuggled up to her, not me. She’s a dick, that’s what she is.”
“A—dick!”
Lyster slunk to the darker end of the bazaar. The Skunk sneered.
“It ain’t you
she’s after. You needn’t worry! She’s a dick them smart French police got on my
tracks.”
Lyster’s eyes
widened understanding. “The Monte
Carlo murder, eh? Well, I warned you.”
The Skunk’s
heavy hand clamped on his shoulder. “Say, buddy, what d’you know of the French
police?”
“Several
useful things, Fazal. I’m using that information myself—and the main part of it
is not to let them get their hands on me. I have influence—and friends—everywhere.
That’s what I depend on. I left America
for good reason, but my friends don’t forget me—anywhere in the world.”
The Syrian
eyed him with growing respect. “One of them international fellows, eh?”
“I’ve worked
in many countries—if that’s what you mean. . . . And I’ve use for men like
you.”
"And
maybe,” The Skunk returned, all his native suspicion coming to the surface,
“maybe I’ll have use for you.”
Next day
Lyster reached the bazaar late. He was surprised and not a little disturbed at
the perfume-seller's utter composure. The Skunk lolled back in the entrance,
smiling now and then, smoking a long hookah—and Lyster had never seen him
smoking the native pipe before.
“I thought you
might have cleared out,” Lyster said, with a laugh.
The Skunk drew
a long puff and emitted it slowly through his nostrils.
“Why should
I?”
"I
thought that girl had you all worked up.”
“What girl?”
"The
painter one—the one you took a good look at yesterday.”
“Oh.” airily,
“I made a mistake.”
For a reason
he did not then understand, Lyster’s heart seemed to drop to his boots.
“How—how did you find that out?”
The Skunk
waved the tube of the pipe toward the spot where Shirley had been seated for a
week.
“You can see
for yourself she ain’t there to-day And such a nice day, too.”
Lyster had
seen, long before he reached the bazaar.
“Hasn’t she
shown up at all?”
"Not that
I've seen.” The Skunk’s eyes were half closed; he continued to smoke. Lyster
could scarcely restrain himself from leaping on him and choking an explanation
from him.
“I guess
you’re right,” he said. “If she was after you she’d be there. I’m sure she
didn’t see you yesterday taking a peep at her. These perambulating painters
cover a lot of ground. I’m told they never finish their work, and when they do
it goes to the attic. Even if you’d seen her before, it mightn’t mean
anything.”
He was
impelled by a sudden desire to allay The Skunk’s suspicions about Shirley.
His stay was
short that morning, and when he left he made straight for the Majestic Hotel.
Shirley had not
slept at the hotel the night before! Nor had anyone seen her since!
Chapter XXVI Search
“YOU’RE
looking tough, Jones,” The Skunk said sympathetically, as Lyster walked into
his bazaar and dropped into his usual chair. “You need something stronger than
coffee—and perfume ain’t it!”
He snapped his
fingers, and the negro appeared soundlessly and salaamed. The Skunk jabbered
something, and the servant disappeared.
Lyster ran his
hand over his forehead. “I guess it’s the heat. I’m not sleeping, and I ate something
at the Chianti last night that didn’t agree with me.”
“Take my
advice,” The Skunk warned, “and steer clear this hot weather of grub you ain’t
used to. No cous-cous, or anything like that. You got to live with that to
stand it—and then it’s best to close your eyes. America has spoiled me for the old
life, too. But, say, if it’s too hot for you, why don’t you clear out? You
don’t seem so eager lately.”
Lyster was not
too miserable to be aware of something unusual in The Skunk’s tone.
“I’m going to
skip,” he said. “But I thought I’d be able to stay till it’s safe to get back
to America .
Tunis has
sort of got hold of me. They say it does.”
“It hasn’t got
me.”
“But you’ve
had it—you’ve lived here and it’s nothing new to you. Anyway, I’ve got to get
back some time soon to make some more money. I don't know how to make a living
anywhere else—and it’s so easy there and—and exciting.”
“You done
pretty well over there?” The Skunk asked.
“Getting my
hooks on a grand now and then got me along nicely, thank you. Over here there’s
no one to fleece.”
The Syrian
winked. “A con. man, eh? Well, it’s a good enough game, but me—”
A veiled woman
appeared at the entrance, and The Skunk rose to attend to her. In a moment or
two he was back.
“Me, I never
went in for the con. stuff myself,” he said. But Lyster’s silence induced no
further confession.
“Of course,”
Lyster said presently, “there was kidnapping, too, and blackmail. There’s a lot
of money in that. And hold-ups. . . . That's why I’m travelling.”
But The Skunk
was not to be drawn. The negro entered with two very small glasses containing a
reddy-brown liquid. The Skunk passed the tray to Lyster, who helped himself, as
if absent-mindedly, to the glass farthest from him. The Skunk accepted the
other without hesitation and sipped it. Lyster did the same with his glass, and
a warm glow shot through him.
“Mighty fast
stuff,” he declared, holding the glass to the light.
“Comes from Algiers ,” his host
explained. “You can’t buy it. I happen to know the man who makes it for his own
use—or I know his daughter." He winked. “But you were talking of hold-ups.
Ever strike it rich that way?”
Lyster smiled,
as if he, too, could hold his tongue. "I know some that did,” he said.
“There was one a few months ago I’d like to have been in on—a man named—I
forget—some funny name—Horn-something. A big broker, I think he was. They say
the gang got away with fifty thousand from a vault in the house.”
"Hmm! I
seem to remember something about that,” said The Skunk innocently. “Know the
guys in that?”
Lyster shook
his head. “They bumped off the butler or someone. One of them got drilled
himself, and the police nabbed him and he squealed. The gang made their getaway
to Europe , they think. Anyway, they have the
dicks working all over Europe , an army of them,
they say.”
The Skunk said
nothing, but he had placed his glass back on the tray, half full. Lyster
continued:
"They say
the gang got quarrelling among themselves; that's how one got shot. It seems
they didn't split fairly. One of them is said to have got away with a jewel
worth a fortune. They weren’t any of my friends. The one that got the jewel was
called Baldy, I think. I’ve heard of him before. Then there was twenty grand or
so in a box on a mantel in the house somewhere, and they say Baldy got that
too, and kept it.”
The Skunk’s
eyes blazed. “The dirty dog did that—Baldy did that?”
“So they say.
I just picked it up before I had to get out in a hurry.” Lyster’s eyes were
fixed on the glass he held.
“I’d hate to
work with a gang like that,” The Skunk said venomously. “One squeals, and
another double-crosses his mates. I hope, by God, they get him! They will if
they’ve the guts of a kitten.”
“Sure. I don’t
see how they’d let him get away with it.”
“They won’t,”
The Skunk promised him.
“But if
they’re scared away to Europe—and they think Baldy stayed in America ?”
“They’ll go
back,” The Skunk assured him, and the set of his big jaw gave point to the
threat.
They talked
for a while, both deliberately concealing personal experiences, both scouting
about crimes in which they might well have participated. At last Lyster rose to
leave.
“I guess I’ll
have to get away from this heat pretty soon,” he said, wiping his face. “If I
stay much longer I’ll be conspicuous. I’ve no hankering to draw the attention
of the police. . . . Funny about that girl,” he mused, “the painter one. Her
picture wasn’t nearly finished when I saw it yesterday.”
“Maybe she
won’t finish it.” The Skunk drained his glass.
“And we took
her for a dick!” Lyster laughed. “But it sure did look queer, if you saw her in
all those places. But then, you and I got together twice, didn’t we? Everyone
goes to Monte Carlo ,
as a matter of course. Then if they come here—well, there you are.”
“But they
don’t turn up, too, at a little village like Banyuls,” The Skunk burst out.
“But then,” hastily, “it doesn’t matter now.”
Lyster heard
that “now” and the sigh of relief that went with it.
In the week
Shirley had been missing Roland Lyster had lost weight. Sleepless nights, days
of persistent but clueless search, snatched meals, walking—walking—walking, had
taken their toll. And April was blazing hot, though, in a way, he was growing
acclimatized.
On the
discovery that Shirley had not returned to the hotel, his first impulse was to
rush to the police. He had even stopped before one of the small but efficient
French police on the Avenue de France before his alarm became more reasonable.
What, he asked himself, could he hope to gain by enlisting the services of the
regular police? Shirley was being held somewhere by force, and in that warren
of a city within the walls not all the police in the world could hope to find
her. Mystery was too deep there, and the anxiety of official France not to rouse public
resentment too great, to promise success. The Arab home, because of its harem
and the privacy of its women, was inviolate, and the French authorities went to
almost any length to preserve the illusion that the Tunisians were a free
people. Lyster had been long enough in Tunis
to note the subterranean rumble of the Nationalist cause, ready to break into
open revolt at some such provocation.
And the very
search might well be Shirley Cringan’s greatest danger, since, warned by it,
her captors might find it necessary to get rid of her in the one way that would
seal her lips.
There was,
too, an unwillingness to bring under the official eye the pursuit on which he
was engaged; it would block all his plans and force him into the open.
Shirley, he
felt certain on reflection, was in little physical danger unless she confessed
her identity and her purpose; and that they would never drag from her.
That The Skunk
was at the bottom of it Lyster did not doubt, and at first he took courage from
the hope of trailing him to Shirley’s prison, but a week’s fruitless effort
convinced him that The Skunk was taking no chances. Directly from his bazaar
the man, when business was over, took his daily walk, ending at the bazaar
where he slept. To persist in following him threatened exposure.
Never for a
moment did Lyster doubt that Shirley was still alive. At times The Skunk was
flagrantly composed, at other times nervous. He would not have been so uneasy
had the girl been put out of the way, the simplicity of disposing of a body in
that great city, or away toward the desert, providing against any chance of
discovery. Shirley might be in danger, but as yet no harm had come to her.
So Lyster had
continued his daily visits to the bazaar; and he prided himself that,
considering the strain, he carried a difficult situation off rather well. But
that, too, told on his physique, a change not to be hidden from the
perfume-seller.
Afternoons and
evenings were spent in a ceaseless search, most of it within the walled city,
but extending at times to the Arab city to the west. It was then he realized
more than ever the maze of blind and twisting streets, narrow and dark at
night, that wound in every direction, crowded by enormous houses with great
iron-studded gates.
By day these
gates were for the most part open, and Lyster would dive through them into
beautiful, palm-lined courts, where he would stand for minutes listening with
bated breath to the low voices of women behind closed doors. It was the one
sound that soothed his fever and sustained his hope. It kept him braced against
his fears. Persistently he told himself that thus—or somehow—he would find
Shirley, that he would feel if she
were near, that the complement of their natures, the harmony of their aims,
would touch a responsive chord in him. And any disaster to her would strike him
to instant understanding.
One afternoon
he spent in the Arab city outside the walls. Here the houses were newer and
smaller, the secretiveness and mystery less oppressive. With almost no
downstairs windows, the upper windows were covered with bulging iron grilles,
through which veiled women laughed down on him, drawing their veils seductively
aside in the security of their isolation. Lyster eyed them all, often urged
almost beyond control to ask questions. Two or three fondouks swarming with lazing Arabs he passed by as of no interest,
and a band of Arab musicians he heard with meagre attention.
He realized
suddenly that the afternoon was passing that the swift night of the desert
would catch him far from home. Emerging on the street skirting the walled city,
one of the four entrance gates stood before him. If he cut through he would
reach his hotel more quickly and escape the dusty road around the wall.
Besides, he was in a hurry to make further inquiries at Shirley’s hotel. He had
explained her absence as a sudden desire to visit the desert, and he did not
know when she would be back. Her room he paid for each week, so that the
manager did not concern himself.
With the
thought that once he reached the souks he would know his way, he left the main
street beyond the wall and struck off in what he thought was the direction of
the Port de France.
How different
the light was in there, amid those towering buildings that almost touched his
shoulders as he walked! How bewildering the twists and turns! What a host of
blind streets that sent him hurrying back to find an outlet! How deserted the
whole dark, mysterious city at that hour! . . . How rash for a foreigner to
risk himself in that silent, uncharted maze!
The street
swung round a corner and ended suddenly in a great, metal-studded door. Lyster
turned, feeling like a trapped animal. As he rounded the corner a large figure
leaped on him from the darkness and gripped his arms to his side. Another
clapped a hand over his mouth, while a third looped a rope about him with one
dexterous toss. That they were in Arab attire Lyster felt as he struggled.
Chapter XXVII Prisoner
HE did not
resist blindly. He realized what was happening and that he had always feared
it. He knew how useless it would be to cry out, even had they permitted it.
Never once had he seen a French policeman within the walled city, another
police fiction that the conqueror was not oppressive. What happened in those
dark streets and closed houses was the private business of Tunisians. No
foreigner would be involved for no foreigner would risk the quarter by night.
And here he,
an Anglo-American, had with open eyes run his head into a noose, he who had
special reason for caution!
As the ropes
tightened on arms and legs he ceased to struggle. A bandage was drawn over his
eyes and he was picked up in powerful arms and borne away.
This was no
common street robbery. They could have cleaned him out in a few seconds and
escaped in the darkness. Nor was it an outburst of Arab fury at the intrusion
of the hated foreigner. They handled him with no unnecessary roughness.
No, they were
taking him captive. Why? They had done the same to Shirley. The association of
thoughts sent a tingle through him. In all that great city they two knew only
one man with a shadow of motive—The Skunk!
Blindfolded
and gagged, wrists and ankles bound, he was carried for what seemed fifteen
minutes or more, the footsteps of his captors echoing against tight walls along
empty streets. No one spoke, no one so much as coughed. Only the breathing of
the one who carried him, and their steady, hurried steps, were audible. It was
uncanny.
Lyster tried
to fix the route in his mind, but in a minute or two he gave it up as useless.
Presently, by the sound, he knew they had entered a courtyard. A heavy gate
clanged behind them. He could hear the soft rustle of palms, the soothing drip
of water.
He knew these
retired courts. He had stepped into a hundred of them in his search for Shirley
Cringan—great palaces built about open squares, with palm trees growing around
the walls, and a fountain in the centre. By day open to the passer-by, by night
closed off by great studded gates, like the doors of a fort; a stone stairway
often led up at one side to the upper rooms.
He was in such
a court now, for his legs were released and he was led up a flight of stone
steps, along a gallery, and through a doorway into a hall. Then through another
door, all the time blindfolded. The door closed, gag and blindfold were
removed, and Lyster found himself in a long, narrow room with a huge negro
eunuch.
The room was
softly lighted by an electric bulb in a heavy brass Turkish lamp suspended from
the ceiling. It was an exquisite room, the walls smothered in expensive rugs,
the ceiling vague through a fine vari-coloured net. The corners were squared
off with arches, the ends of which were supported by coloured Moorish pillars,
high up in one wall were three small grilled windows, while along two walls
pillow-piled divans extended. At each end was a Turkish table bearing a hookah.
The floor was deep with rugs.
Lyster looked
about for the door, but saw none. It was, of course, concealed by the hanging
rugs.
More curious
than alarmed, he turned to the eunuch.
“A bit rough
as an introduction to all this luxury,” he said, “What’s the answer?”
The negro
eunuch paid no attention.
"What’s
the rent?” Lyster persisted. “It beats the hotel into a cocked hat!”
The eunuch
continued in silence to gather up the ropes with which Lyster had been bound.
"Don't be
so talkative,” Lyster chided, this time in French. He tapped the negro on the
chest. “Don’t you understand?”
The negro
opened his mouth and pointed, and Lyster shuddered. A vast, black opening
filled with gleaming teeth—but no tongue!
“Anyway, you
can hear,” Lyster said. “I want to talk to your master. Send him here!”
But the eunuch
only shook his head with a troubled frown and walking to the wall at the end
opposite the windows, drew back a rug and disappeared behind it. Lyster heard a
click, then the soft closing of a door.
He made a more
detailed survey of his prison then, but he found nothing new. As he roamed
about he shuddered. The room breathed of sensuality, of debasing
voluptuousness, so that for a moment he was conscious of a terrifying limpness
and langour. It was not hardship he would have to fight, but luxury.
He thought of
Shirley and shuddered again.
Bracing
himself against the atmosphere of the place, he began to search for something
he might use as a weapon. But there was not a movable object except the
hookahs, the two tables, and the rugs and cushions.
Behind the
curtain where the eunuch had disappeared was no trace of the door, and, for the
time being, he spent no time trying to probe its secret. His first care was to
work out some sort of answer to the queries flooding his mind, then to decide
his course.
Why was he
there? What did they plan to do with him? Was Shirley, too, there? Who was
responsible for it all?
Only one
question brought an answer. Of course, The Skunk was behind everything. Though
he could not be certain, he felt satisfied that The Skunk was personally
present at his capture. Beyond that, all he knew was that his own captivity and
Shirley’s disappearance were connected. But how had The Skunk succeeded in
associating them, since he, Lyster, had seen Shirley only four times since his
arrival?
Of one thing
he was certain, and it encouraged him to hope: no immediate physical injury was
planned; their treatment of him thus far proved that.
But he
upbraided himself now for not having gone to the police. As things stood there
was not in all Tunis
a single person to worry about them, even to ask questions. Their possessions
at the hotels would be confiscated to pay their bills, but hotels accepted that
as part of the business.
After an
hour’s cogitation he set himself to find the door. The wall was of heavy
woodwork, and here and there slight chinks were visible, but nothing resembling
the outline of a doorway, and the whole wall sounded solid. Neither did he find
anything suggesting a hidden spring or mechanism.
Fearing that
ears might be listening outside, he spent little time on the search, but he
made the round of the four walls, pulling back the rugs as he went, the
investigation was fruitless.
He looked at
his watch. It was almost nine o’clock.
The night wore
on. He dared not sleep. Someone was sure to come to him, he reasoned. There
could be no sense in leaving him there without a word all night. But no one
came, and daylight showed through the three little windows before his eyes
closed.
He wakened to
the daylight streaming through the windows, and as he lay trying to recall what
had happened, the distant, ringing call of a muezzin brought him quickly to his feet. He recognized that
voice—he knew the minaret. It was in the western part of the walled city. But
he could not be sure how distant it was or in what direction.
As the first
sound from the outer world, it comforted him. His watch told him that he had
slept well into the forenoon. Physically and mentally he must have been more
weary than he realized. And now he was hungry.
His captors
had provided for that. On the end of a divan, near the end of the room, rested
a brass tray and on it was set out a heavy breakfast. Years in America
had modified his English appetite for the morning meal, but this ample
breakfast he consumed to the last crumb. It consisted of an American breakfast
food with goat’s milk and sugar, a baked apple, three slices of bacon, and
toast that, while made from coarse bread and now almost cold, was agreeable
enough. Its American trend once more brought The Skunk into the picture.
But one thing
made him uneasy—they could enter the room and leave without awakening him.
He had just
finished when a sound behind the rug made him lift his head hopefully. But it
was only the negro. The big fellow grinned as his eye lit on the empty tray,
and he beckoned to Lyster to follow.
The latter, as
he went through the secret door, now wide open, took careful note of its exact
location. On the other side as well, in the hall he entered, the door was
hidden by rugs. Since the door was left open after them Lyster saw that he was
not to learn on his return how it was opened. The eunuch led along the hall and
out on the gallery surrounding the court; and Lyster, seeing the closed gates,
knew they were to go no farther.
This, then, was
to be his outing, a provision that prophesied extended captivity; and, since he
had seen no one but the mute eunuch, who seemed to understand neither English
nor French, Lyster saw before him a stretch of inexplicable imprisonment.
The eunuch
descended to the floor of the court and seated himself indifferently on the
wall about the fountain, leaving Lyster to wander where he pleased. The court
was the most luxurious and refreshing he had ever seen. The palms were large
and green, the fountain elaborate, and a crescent flower-bed at one end was
bright with flowers. Over the gallery a roof extended, shading it from the sun
on three sides at any hour of the day. Nothing else was visible but a square of
sky. Lyster made sure of this by circling the gallery to see if he could catch
sight of a recognizable tower or minaret. From the roof of his hotel he had
often looked out over the city, and his endless walks had made him familiar
with every landmark and much of the skyline.
His guard
remained beside the fountain, dabbling his big hands in the water, paying no
attention to his prisoner. And Lyster, taking advantage of it, examined the
walls about him. They were like prison walls. The one door was that by which he
had emerged, but high over his head were a number of small windows resembling
those in his own room.
On an impulse
he cleared his throat loudly. The eunuch looked up and frowned, and Lyster,
leaning over the railing, called in an unnecessarily loud voice:
“May I have a
drink of water? I’m thirsty.” He spoke in English.
The eunuch
rose and ran up the stairs, his heavy face clouded. Roughly he caught Lyster by
the shoulder and thrust him back into the hall and closed the door. A thrilling
deduction: someone was in a position to hear him out there, someone the eunuch
did not wish to hear!
In the
afternoon he was permitted another quarter of an hour of exercise in the court,
but the eunuch’s grim demand for silence by placing his fingers tightly over
Lyster's lips as they came into the open warned him not to do anything to
deprive himself of the one time of comparative freedom. He must not arouse the
suspicion of his guard.
His meals were
brought at regular hours, and after a few days a sort of communication was
carried on by signs, the big eunuch’s face lighting with pleasure when he
understood. But there were to be no favours: the eunuch was a faithful servant.
Only once more
did Lyster brave his guard’s displeasure during the time of his outing. He was
wont to walk about the gallery while the eunuch sat beside the fountain, and
one morning he broke into a low whistle. It was a song popular in America ;
he had often heard Shirley humming it. For some time the eunuch appeared not to
notice, but presently he looked up and made a peremptory sign for silence.
Lyster stopped immediately.
Next morning
he awaited his regular outing with an impatience inexplicable even to himself.
It was a beautiful, bright day, the late morning sun slanting sharply down to
draw a clean-cut line along the floor of the Western gallery. The shadowed half
against the wall was the darker by contrast. It was breathlessly hot, and the
eunuch hurried down to dabble his hands in the cooling water, leaving Lyster to
roam about the gallery.
Lyster was
thinking. Why did he feel so excited, so hopeful, this morning? The heat was
beginning to tell on him. Worn down, even when he was taken prisoner, by
anxiety and broken sleep and meals, he wondered how long he could stand the
African heat.
Suddenly, from
a window above the gallery across the court, came the sound of women laughing.
The eunuch heard and raised his head, but he did nothing. Lyster had heard
every note—and Shirley’s voice was not there. But then she would not laugh at
such a time. Giving no sign of having heard, he strolled on.
As he entered
the side of the gallery, half of which lay in shade, he leaned for a few
minutes against the wall. He had no idea why until he noticed a tiny piece of
leather tight against the wall, the lower layer of the heel of a woman’s shoe.
His heart beat wildly. He walked past it. But on the next round he managed to
pick it up without breaking his steady pace. Down below the eunuch watched the
gold-fish in the water. Lyster felt suddenly limp.
For the bit of
fawn-coloured leather in his pocket, he knew, came from Shirley Cringan’s shoe!
Out of sight
of the eunuch he drew from his pocket his note-book and tore from it a tiny
piece of paper. On the next round he dropped it in the spot where he had found
the piece of leather. He dared not risk so much as a mark on it.
Shirley knew
he was there! She had heard his cough, his call to the eunuch, his whistle! She
was somewhere behind those walls!
Chapter XXVIII The Secret Door
SHIRLEY’S
reply was another piece of paper left in the same spot, a flimsy dot of white
that would escape the notice of anyone but Lyster. Besides, the promenaders
would avoid the sunny side of the gallery.
That was in
the morning. In the afternoon nothing happened. Their post-office was, in the
afternoon, the shaded side and would be used by the women on their way to the
fountain and the lower shade. Next morning, too, brought at first no further
sign of Shirley’s presence, and Lyster’s heart sank. His anxiety was not deep
enough to make him reckless, and, as he strolled about, he noticed that the eunuch
was watching him.
The quarter of
an hour ended. The eunuch was mounting the stairs to return him to his prison,
when Lyster’s eye caught a streak of white in a crack in the stone wall close
beside him. He managed to stoop and pull the paper from its hiding-place.
In his room he
opened it. It bore only the initials “S.C.”
He realized
then how uncertain he had been, after all, that Shirley was really under the
same roof. This final proof sent him pacing feverishly about the room, grinding
his teeth at his helplessness. The evidence that Shirley was at least well
calmed him somewhat in time.
But what could
he do? How could he help her? How get to her? It was even certain that further
communication was dangerous, if not impossible. That the eunuch’s suspicions
were growing was plain enough, for the fellow was more sullen, less friendly
and indifferent. A single slip on his or Shirley’s part might deprive one or
both of those few minutes in the court.
Depression
even deeper than his early elation settled over him, so that he slept not at
all that night. Sitting with his head in his hands, or roving restlessly about,
perspiring and weak, gasping with the heat of the night, he fretted himself
almost to illness. Shirley would expect him to do something. She made no
allowances, asked and gave no quarter.
Next morning
he managed to slip a paper bearing his own initials in the crack. In the
afternoon it was still there. But the following morning it was gone. He slept
most of the afternoon, except for the fifteen minutes in the court.
He had not
neglected the door. Each time the eunuch entered or left, Lyster arranged to be
lounging on the divan where he could best see. But his curiosity netted him
nothing. The rug hid everything. Lyster fretted, called himself names, worried
about Shirley and his failure to reach her. There were times when he restrained
himself with difficulty from throwing himself on the eunuch and staking
everything on such a one-sided struggle. But reason prevailed. The eunuch was
enough for two ordinary men.
The days grew
warmer, the nights smothering, though the thick walls of the room protected him
from extremes. But how was Shirley standing it? Had she the comfort of the
presence of the other women he had heard laughing, or was she kept by herself?
Laughter proved, at least, that gladness was not unknown within those sombre
walls.
It was the day
after Shirley’s initialled slip of paper was left for him that Lyster set
himself more seriously to solve the mystery of the hidden door. He began to
study the movements of the eunuch as revealed by the concealing rug.
Sometimes the
big negro came and went with heavy trays that required both hands, yet the door
was opened without difficulty.
Choosing a
late hour at night, Lyster pulled the rug back as far as it would go and,
dropping to his knees, examined the floor. It seemed solid as elsewhere. The
narrow baseboard, too, showed only the thinnest crack where he now knew the
door to be. What else was there to do? He sat back on his heels and pondered.
As he moved to rise, feeling more helpless and stupid than ever, a flash of
reflected light from a bit of bright metal attracted his attention and he bent
nearer. A narrow strip of moulding edged the baseboard, and the head of one of
the nails affixing it glistened like silver.
Why?
There was only
one answer. That nail was rubbed to brightness by repeated rubbing or pressure!
The other nails were covered with varnish and almost invisible. The nail that
interested him projected slightly.
Lyster
staggered to his feet, his heart pounding. Dare he risk all just now when he
was feeling so limp? He gripped his fists, reached out his foot, and pressed.
There was a
familiar rasping sound, and the edge of the door moved outward.
With a gasp
Lyster drew it shut. He could not go on then. His knees shook, and a cold sweat
had broken out all over him until he thought he was going to faint.
He threw
himself on the divan and slept as he had not slept since his imprisonment.
Next day the
quarter hour of exercise was a time of abject dread. The eunuch watched his
every move and finally beckoned him down to the court. Lyster was almost too
weak to cover his dread. Had anyone heard him open that door? Shirley, too, had
left no sign. Was she, too, under suspicion? Had they managed things so
clumsily that contact was to be denied them hereafter by solitary confinement
for Shirley? Had something even more tragic happened to her?
Once more in
his room, he listened at the wall for the passing of the women of the harem to
their outing in the court. He had long since learned their hour of coming and
going. He had heard, too, that following their return they were not locked in
the harem but were permitted the run of the hall for a time.
Lyster heard
them return. By pressing his ear against the wall he was aware of their voices
in the hall. Waiting for several minutes, his heart in his throat, he pressed
the nail.
Chapter XXIX The Harem
As the door
opened, a sudden hush fell over the chatter of women's voices. As yet Lyster
could see nothing, for the rug and the door hid his view, but that abrupt,
tense silence almost unnerved him. He pushed aside the rug and stepped out.
Instantly
there was a scurry of feet, and from the far end of the hall five veil-less
women, clustered together, peered at him. There was no window in the hall, and
the outer door was closed, but two hanging lamps cast sufficient light to show
Lyster that the women were not so much alarmed as curious and excited. He saw
enough for that, but little more. These were Arab women.
One of them,
the eldest, came forward.
“Who are you?”
she demanded in French.
Lyster
scarcely heard, for at that moment one of the women at her back moved quickly.
It was Shirley—Shirley dressed in Arab garb like her companions. Something
about it made Lyster faint with dread. Something, too, gave him the idea that
Shirley was warning him not to recognize her.
“Who are you?”
the woman demanded again, standing directly before him now. “How did you get
here? You’re English!”
“Yes,” Lyster
replied. “I’m English—a stranger.” He was confused by the thought that, with
all his plans and hopes, he had not prepared himself for this, though he knew
the women were there.
The woman
looked fearfully toward a door that led from the side of the hall. “Go quickly!
You’re in danger, terrible danger! They mustn’t see you here! It's
death—death!”
“It’s death to
remain where they keep me. I’m a prisoner, and I don’t know why.”
A slight noise
from beyond the door brought a look of terror to the woman’s faded face.
“Go—go!
To-morrow!” she whispered. “I’ll knock three times on the wall when it’s safe.”
She hastened
to her companions, chattering loudly. Lyster stepped back through the door and
closed it behind him.
That night was
most uncomfortable of all. Though he had seen Shirley and knew her to be well,
his mind refused to function. Shirley was there, one of the harem, and, though
he might see her, what could he hope to do to free her? Sleeping—dreaming
disturbed dreams—walking about—sleeping again, he tossed and fretted. His dreams
were of Shirley in an Arab harem! Finally he forced himself to remain awake,
unable to face the nightmare of it.
Next day the
eunuch did an unaccustomed thing—he remained in the room while Lyster ate. And
the latter, with no appetite, steeled himself to clean the tray. When they went
out in the court for the morning exercise, Lyster was marched straight down to
the fountain and kept there.
The perspiring
captive wiped his wet forehead and nodded toward the sky. It was the heat, he
wished to say. But no longer was there sympathy in the eunuch’s face. The time
in the court, too, was cut short, but that Lyster did not mind; he boiled and
fretted for the signal that was to tell him the way was clear to see Shirley
again.
He heard the
women pass through the hall to the court. He heard them return. A terrifying
thought came to him: could he trust them? Were they not likely to betray him to
their master, rather than help him? His body was wet with perspiration, his
nerves were on edge.
A slight
knock, twice repeated, revived the struggle of hope and fear, but he pressed
the nail and the door opened.
The five women
were there, but this time scattered over the hall. One, seated near the only
other inner door, was, Lyster decided, a look-out. His hopes rose. From the five
Shirley’s face stood out with a beauty so startling that he could not keep his
eyes from her.
The oldest
woman addressed him:
“Don’t be
afraid. We’re all on guard. Why do they keep you in there?”
“I don’t know.
I was walking along the street when some men jumped on me. They brought me
here.”
“When was
that?”
Lyster tried
to remember. “It seems like months. It must be less than two weeks ago.”
The women
jabbered together in a low tone.
“Do you know
where you are?”
“No. All I
know is it’s near a minaret, but I can’t tell how far or even in what direction
it is. It’s in the walled city, of course. Please tell me where I am!”
The woman
dropped her eyes and seemed to debate with herself. "No it would do no
good to tell you. If you escape all will be well. If—" she shrugged.
"Do you know who lives here—our master?"
"If
I did I might have some idea why I was brought here. I'm just a tourist. I like
Tunis , and I
stayed after most of the tourists had gone. I don't think I can stand the heat
much longer. I'm not used to it."
The
woman spoke in Arabic to her companions, and they regarded him with pity in
their eyes.
"If
you're English," the woman said, "you can speak to this woman
here." She beckoned to Shirley, who came toward her. "She's
American."
Lyster
restrained himself. Something in the woman's manner, in the keen glance she
gave him, warned him that he had a part to play. He looked from face to face.
They were very ugly—and Shirley was so beautiful.
"I
know her." he said "That's why they captured me, I suppose. I was to
marry her. Perhaps—they wanted to make sure of stopping that. Perhaps your
master wants her for himself."
He
knew the Mohammedian law of four wives. It would mean that one of these women
must be divorced to make room for the new wife. Though Shirley's eyes flashed
for a moment, so that he found she might ruin everything, she managed to
control herself.
"Yes,"
the woman said "there are already four of us." She might have read
his thoughts. Her face was black with anger.
"I
understand." Lyster shook his head sadly. "And your master may
divorce any of you with a word—"
"It
would be me," the woman said bitterly. "I was the first. The oldest
goes first—and I've borne him children, four of them."
"Who
is your master?"
The
woman shook her head. "He's a kaid—down
in the desert."
"Then
he isn't a perfume-seller?"
"Indeed,
no." The woman stiffened. "A perfume-seller, indeed!"
The
women chattered in great excitement for a time.
"Who
is the perfume-seller you speak of?" the woman asked, eyeing him
suspiciously.
Lyster
saw his mistake. "Oh, I've talked to one of them in the Souk El Attarine.
I never liked him."
"And
you are not married yet to this girl?"
"No,
not yet."
"Yet
you travel together! I don't understand the English."
"You'd
better let it go at that," Shirley said in English, "or blame it on
the Americans. You're getting out of your depth. Funny, when you come to think
of it—one of a quartette of wives reminding us of propriety."
The
woman asked what Shirley said.
"She
says," Lyster lied, "that you don't understand. We aren't travelling
together; we just happened to meet in Tunis ."
"And
you're to be married so quickly—after just meeting?"
"Better
call off the wedding," Shirley laughed. "It doesn't seem to satisfy
any of us. Isn't there something we can do—beside romance? I'm rather anxious
to get away."
“I’m
thinking,” he replied helplessly. “I’ll find a way.”
“I've been
thinking for several weeks,” she said.
"I hope
your thoughts are more productive. But whatever happens now we must take no
further risks out in the court. It was clever of you to arouse their jealousy
of me—even with the explanation you made. It wasn’t hard, for I’ve worked on
that theme myself from the first. I’ve developed into a regular Hollywood vamp. And their master isn’t such a gargoyle,
either. Much more of this and I don’t know what might happen. It’s an
enervating life.”
“Have you seen
The Skunk?”
“Not once.
I’ve no proof that he’s concerned. Have you seen him?”
Lyster told
her he had not, and was more troubled than ever. "Do you live with these
women?”
“Only for this
hour. The rest of the time I’m locked in a room away through that door. That’s
another hall. My door is the third on the left.”
The look-out
hissed a warning and waved frantically.
"I'll
keep on thinking,” Shirley whispered as the women ran to the end of the hall,
and Lyster stepped back into his own room.
Chapter XXX A Momentous Visit
ROLAND LYSTER
dropped back on a divan. He was wet with perspiration and oddly limp. He
wondered if the heat and the excitement had affected his heart. The hand he
held before him trembled, and he could not control it. The air in the narrow
room was stifling. The persistent call of the muezzin, drifting through the open window, depressed him. It was
fatalism made audible, driving his sense of helplessness so deep that sometimes
he cursed himself, and his lips were cracked and bleeding where he bit them.
He had built
so much on uncovering the mystery of the door through which the eunuch came and
went. Yet, now that he could open it at will, what good did it do? Even with
the sympathy of the women of the harem, their unconcealed desire to get rid of
a rival, there were other doors between him and liberty, doors he saw no way of
opening. All he had been able to do was to widen the walls of his own prison;
nothing whatever had been accomplished for Shirley.
Without doubt
the women of the harem were permitted a certain liberty abroad, but always
under guard. Such a big man as their master would see to that. Shirley had
never been allowed outside the building, of course, all these weeks, her one
taste of outside air being the restricted range of the court, with its big
locked gates, the keys of which always hung from the eunuch’s belt. The palace
in which they were held was a veritable prison, the home of a grandee, built to
protect its privacy and his possessions.
After a
tearing spam of impatience his nerves calmed a little. The door opened and the
eunuch entered with his supper.
That something
upset the big fellow Lyster read immediately. His ugly black face was twisted
to a furious scowl, not so much in anger as in excitement. He dropped the tray
on the divan so that the coffee slopped over, and a dish of candied dates slid
to the cushions. For several moments he stood before Lyster, staring down on
him, his lips working with the effort to convey something of importance to the
prisoner.
With a gesture
of helpless impatience he stalked to the end of the room, his great fists
clenching and unclenching. As he reached Lyster once more he pointed to the door
and shook his head. Lyster's heart sank. Did he know? Was he warning him not to
attempt it again? But a moment later he gathered, by the movement of the
eunuch's hand, that the big fellow was trying to warn him against someone who
would presently visit him. Both hands lifted in a peculiarly expressive gesture
of angry importance.
Lyster
wondered. There were only two visitors who could be interested in him, The
Skunk and the owner of the palace, and how the latter was concerned, other than
as The Skunk's friend, he could not understand. Since his talk with the woman
of the harem, the position of The Skunk was a greater mystery than ever, for he
had accepted it from the first that the Syrian was the master of the place.
If only the
eunuch could speak! If only he understood any language in which Lyster could
make inquiries! That the big fellow bore him no ill will, indeed, was rather
friendly to him, was certain, but they had no method of communication apart
from gestures, and they were so inadequate.
At any rate,
the promised visit would furnish an explanation. Most important of all, it
would enable him to estimate the danger to Shirley Cringan.
The eunuch
continued to gesticulate. He went to the rug concealing the entrance and,
wheeling about, returned to Lyster, with a glowering look on his fat face.
That, Lyster gathered, was someone entering in an angry or dangerous mood. Then
the eunuch patted Lyster on the shoulder and, extending his hands palm
downwards, moved them slowly about. Lyster, it said, must be calm about it.
With a circle of his arms, his eyes fixed on the windows, he made it plain that
the sun must sink once more before the threatened visit.
Lyster nodded
understandingly, and the eunuch's face cleared. But as he picked up the tray
and started for the door he shook his head and sighed.
Strangely
enough, that night Lyster slept soundly. Strange—until he reasoned that for the
first time, the mystery promised to be cleared within a few hours. Then he
wondered if it was merely the kindness of Provenance preparing him for the
worst.
He wakened
with new life flowing through him. Through the high windows in his room he saw
that the sky was overcast. The day would be less oppressive at least. He forgot
the eunuch's warning and looked forward to the coming encounter with a lift to
his shoulders and a brighter face than he had had for days.
Breakfast
arrived, so exactly an American meal that Lyster might have been back at Nathan
Hornbaker’s, but for the hovering eunuch and the rug-lined room. In the breakfast
he read the menu of one who had lived in America —The Skunk, of course.
Once more he
tried to wring something intelligible from the eunuch, but the negro was a
different man this morning. He only stared and shook his head. Lyster was not
deceived. The man was frightened—he had been given orders he dared not disobey.
And, above all, the eunuch would be faithful.
So that
breakfast was not a success. The bacon and coffee cooled, and the toast went
tough. At last Lyster with a despairing gesture, invited the eunuch to finish
what he had left.
As some sort
of reward the eunuch looked back pityingly as he left the room.
The moment his
guard was gone Lyster hurried to the door and pressed his ear against it. He
had a feeling that he would that morning miss his usual exercise, and he was
right. The hour came and went and presently he heard the passing of the women
to the court.
He stood still
behind the curtain when a slight sound in the outer hall sent him tumbling back
to the divan. A moment later the rug turned back and The Skunk entered.
Lyster feigned
to be too surprised to speak, then, as The Skunk grinned a little shamefacedly
he leaped indignantly to his feet.
"What
does this mean?” he demanded.
The Skunk
waved him back and seated himself on the opposite divan. To hide his
embarrassment he proceeded clumsily to light a cigar, now and then glancing
nervously at Lyster.
Lyster adopted
a new line of attack. "How did you find me?” He whispered it, glancing
toward the door. “How did you find I was here? What is it all about, anyway?”
“Say,” snarled
The Skunk, “I wanta know who the devil you are!”
Lyster sat
open-mouthed. “Who—I am? What does it matter? I’ve told you all you need to
know.”
The Skunk
bounded up and stood over him. “Are you a dick—I wanta know that?”
“A—dick! Good
Lord!” Lyster threw back his head and laughed.
“All right,
but you don’t fool me. I’ve cut my eye teeth! You and that girl are in cahoots.
She was staying at the ‘Majestic,’ and you used to go to see her there. Never
mind how I know. You don’t think you could get away with that in this burg and
hide it, surely? We’ve got eyes in every hotel and restaurant and fondouk and boarding-house in the
country. Every foreigner that lands here is spotted and trailed."
“I should
think you’re right.” Lyster threw himself back on the divan and locked his
hands behind his head. He smiled sarcastically. “I ought to know. It was how
you got me here. But the rest—all this bunk you’re rambling about! ” He
shrugged his shoulders.
“I’m not
asking,” The Skunk scowled, “I’m telling. Now I want to know who you are, and
why you’re in Tunis .”
“Such a small
thing, too, between friends,” Lyster scoffed. “You grab me on the street and
lug me here, just to ask a simple question like that—after you've kept me a
prisoner for a couple of weeks. Well you can go on asking. And you can go to
Hell! You have eyes everywhere—you know everything. All right, answer your own
questions!" he turned his face away.
The Skunk
scowled and fumed; plainly he was not sure of himself. "I wish to God I
knew the answers," he exclaimed angrily. "You ain't any French dick.
That girl—she may be. Anyways, she was on my trail. And that means you must
have been doing the same. And," with a nasty leer, "see the mess you
got yourself into."
Lyster waved
an indifferent hand. "You've got it all settled, so what's the use of me
saying anything? But you've something else on your mind. Sort of frightened,
aren't you? Well . . . I'm not."
"Yeah,
but you don't need to be frightened at the same thing as me."
"Think
not? . . . Did it ever strike you that the girl may have been trailing me, not
you? I saw her at the Majestic, yes but—sometimes—I play a desperate
game."
"I
suppose that's why you hunted in the city for her when she-disappeared."
"Why do
you think I did that?"
The Skunk
shook his fist in Lyster's calm face. "You ain't fooling me, young man.
Now—I want-to know—who you are!"
"And I
want to know what the stock market will do next June. Go on-ask and ask and
ask. If I'm what you think I am I wouldn't tell you. I wouldn't admit it. If
I'm not I don't care a cuss what you think. I suppose you think it silly of me
to be suspicious of you. I was in Monte
Carlo before you were. Then I came to Tunis , and you turn up
here after—"
"I was
here before you were."
"So you
say. And you were down in the desert. All I know is you talked to a man in Monte Carlo whom the
police want . . . So did I."
"You mean
you talked to Frenchy?"
"That's
what I said. We knew each other in America ." Lyster was so
impressed with the new slant he was giving his story that he failed to notice
the thin ice ahead. "I'll tell you something more: I followed him to
Banyuls . . . I saw you there."
The Syrian
stared. Lyster continued: "I followed him—trailed him, if you like.
Frenchy, you see, tried to double cross me. He didn't divvy fairly on a job we
worked together in America
. . . and I don't let anyone get away with that."
"Anything
Frenchy got was more than his share," The Skunk said scornfully. "He
never was any good, and he was always yellow."
"Ah! So
he did it to you too? Our mutual friend seems to be a bit of a snake."
"He's
worse!" The Skunk exploded. "Say, we were in a job together too,
Frenchy and me, and I did all the planning and dirty work. All Frenchy did was
to tag along." His face took on a look of new interest. "Say, don't
mean to say you bumped him off in Banyuls? I couldn't find him—"
"I hadn't
the chance—but he nearly got me instead."
"Then
where did he go?"
"Back to
the United States .
He knows it's the safest place in the world to hide."
The Skunk
stood thinking.
“Then what
about the girl?” he demanded, "You called on her at her hotel. And you
want me to believe she was trailing you. Well, tell it to your grandmother!”
He stamped to
the door. As he drew back the rug he turned.
“I know damn
well you won’t peep. But maybe the girl will—maybe there’s a way of making her.
Rot here and think over that!”
He
disappeared.
Lyster hurried
to the wall and pressed his ear against it. After a time he heard the women
enter the hall from the court. Taking a long breath, he pressed the spring.
To his
surprise the hall was empty, and the change in the routine alarmed him. The
Skunk’s threat to force Shirley’s lips terrified him. Whatever happened, he
must somehow get to her, for The Skunk would stop at nothing.
There was but
the one inner door from this hall and it, Shirley had told him, admitted to
another hall on which her room opened. He looked about for a weapon of some
kind, but there were only four chairs at the far end of the hall. Making his way
softly along, he picked up the nearest, thrilling to a new vigour in his veins
His muscles felt keen and strong. With set face he approached the door to the
other hall.
His hand was
on the copper knob when it was opened abruptly from the other side and the
eunuch faced him.
At the same
moment a woman screamed somewhere, it was Shirley Cringan’s voice.
Chapter XXI The Fight
LYSTER leaped
back, whirling the chair aloft. The eunuch, equally surprised, his mouth wide
open and his eyes goggling incredulously, himself retreated a step or two. It
was the one moment of the gory fight that followed when Lyster had the
advantage. Had he attacked instantly the result might have been different.
It was the
eunuch who recovered first. A look of animal fury swept over his heavy face,
and his fingers curled like claws. With it was a tinge of fear, but not of the
man before him.
“Get back!”
Lyster held the chair ready to strike. “Get back, or I’ll brain you! Show me
where The Skunk is, and get out of my way!”
In his excitement
and blind recklessness, tingling with inhuman strength and determination, he
spoke in English. The chair felt light as a feather, so light that he feared
for its effectiveness as he waved it about his head.
The eunuch,
with a snarl, came on, crouched like a tiger, his great curving fingers before
him. Lyster steadily retreated. That swollen face of rage thrust forward, those
terrible eyes, that bent body balanced on muscular toes, beat through his
grimness, so that he could almost feel the black fingers at his throat.
Besides, he had no wish to stage a fight before that open door.
Watching every
move, he stepped back and back. He had a momentary thought of retreating to his
own room, the door of which he had left ajar, but once in there the eunuch
would have him at his mercy; the door would be locked against him, and never
again would he have a chance like this.
The eunuch
paused, then, with the leap of a cat, was over Lyster. The latter brought the
chair crashing on his opponent's arm, where it shattered, but the heavy seat
swept over the guard and caught the negro on the cheek-bone. A gush of blood
flowed down the black face and the eunuch staggered. Lyster leaped to the
attack. He had dropped the chair. His fingers reached for the eunuch's throat.
Perhaps he could get a hold on that ebony pillar before its owner recovered
sufficiently to defend himself.
His fingers
reached their goal and closed. The neck that had been wet with perspiration was
wetter now. Blood dripped over his wrists as he clung. It splattered into his
face as his thumbs pressed hard against the Adam's apple, and he closed his
eyes.
For a moment
the eunuch seemed about to fall, but with a chocking bellow his great muscles
surged and his hands closed over his attacker's wrists.
Lyster closed
his teeth. If he could hold on—hold on—hold on! Nothing else mattered, blows or
kicks or bellows. The grip on his wrists was like twin iron hands. He felt his
fingers swell with the pressure, the flow of blood seemed to hesitate
throughout his body. But he hung on, murmuring fantastic prayers. The smell of
blood almost made him sick, the warm drip of it, the sliminess.
He was vaguely
conscious of the presence of the others in the hall and opened his eyes.
In the doorway
four startled faces peered at him, the women of the harem. But what he noticed
more particularly, and his heart sank, was that Shirley was not with them. The
mouths of three of the women opened as if about to scream, but the oldest held
up a silencing hand and jerked a short command.
Lyster called
to them in French. He felt his strength going. His hands felt as if they would
burst, and his temples pounded so that he could scarcely hear the sound of his
own voice. The women made no move. Lyster closed his eyes again; he could hold
out no longer.
At that
moment, above the hubbub of the fight, there came a pounding on the outer door
leading to the court. Lyster heard it, and renewed strength flowed through him.
The negro, too was feeling the strain, for he staggered. The pair stumbled
toward where the women stood, their faces ghastly with terror.
Suddenly the
oldest of them darted forward. From the eunuch's belt she snatched the bunch of
keys and ran toward the outer door.
Lyster's burst
of strength was short-lived. His fingers were numb, his knees buckled under
him, and he was flung against the wall. As he fell the door of the court was
flung open and a man stood framed against the light. It was Frenchy!
At that moment
the woman snapped off the hall lights.
For a moment
no one moved. Lyster lay limply against the wall, staring at the new-comer. The
woman who had opened the door crowded into a corner, terrified at the part she
had played. Frenchy remained where he was, his forehead wrinkled with the
effort to see within the darker hall.
The eunuch
hesitated, startled and confused, then, crouching again, his throat gurgling
with animal snarls, he started forward. Lyster struggled to his knees, but he
could do nothing more. What was there to do? Frenchy was no more likely to help
than was The Skunk, and much less likely than the eunuch. He knelt, waiting for
things to happen.
The eunuch
moved slowly forward on muscles of steel. Whatever Frenchy was to Lyster, he
was no more welcome to the negro.
Suddenly the
man in the doorway whipped out an automatic. The eunuch did not even hesitate;
he was no longer human. Frenchy held his ground, but his glance moved for a
moment to Lyster, as if with appeal.
The eunuch
crept on. The gun pointed, and a shot crashed through the hall. The eunuch
crept on. A second shot. Still the eunuch advanced. Lyster marvelled.
"If you
must!” Frenchy breathed, and fired again.
And as the big
black body of the negro slumped sideways to the floor, in the midst of a leap,
Lyster knew that the first two shots had not been aimed to kill.
No one moved.
Six pairs of eyes were fixed on the twitching body. Then a step sounded along
the branching hall and through the grouped women The Skunk pushed his way. The
light from the open door fell full on him. Frenchy stiffened, and with a quick
breath rushed forward, gun levelled.
“Aha!” he
grated in English. “At last I’ve got you! You thought you’d get away with it.
You thought you’d get more’n your share, and mine too. I fooled you. Now,
you’ll split—or I’ll drill you, like I did this nigger of yours! You got the
diamond necklace from Toni—”
Instinctively
The Skunk’s hands had gone up before the gun. He seemed numbed with surprise.
“Frenchy,
Frenchy,” he cried, “you got it all wrong! I didn’t get the diamonds. I don’t
know where they are. I split fair, I tell you! I ain’t—”
“You lie! You
and Toni, you got a lot out of that vault you never shared. I’m here to get it.
And damn quick about it!”
“But,
Frenchy—”
But Frenchy
was not listening.
“All right.”
The Skunk beckoned and stepped back toward the door. “I’ll give you something,
anyway. I’m always ready to help a buddy.”
He had reached
the door. A swift step and the women were between him and the gun. Then, with a
thrust of his big arm, he sent them staggering into the outer hall and slammed
the door behind him.
But Lyster was
prepared; he had looked for some trick. With a lucky toss he managed to get the
leg of the broken chair into the opening in time to block the door.
Forgetting
Frenchy then, he rushed after The Skunk, but the Frenchman was too quick for
him. A shot went clanging into the dark passage, but a door far away banged and
all was silence. Lyster hesitated to advance in the darkness, where he would be
outlined against the lighter hall at his back. He saw Frenchy herding the women
through a door on the left, and he watched, puzzled. For some reason he had no
fear now of the man, but he had picked up the chair leg, determined to fight it
out if he must to get to Shirley Cringan.
Frenchy closed
the door behind the women and turned—smiled—removed hat and wig.
“Redfern!”
The detective
wiped his face with a handkerchief and shuddered. “I didn’t like it, Lyster,
but I had to do it. If it had been The Skunk I wouldn’t have batted an
eye—except that Mr. Hornbaker wants him back alive. But,” catching Lyster’s
arm, “we must hurry. Do you know where Miss Cringan is? We must get away before
the police arrive; they’d upset everything.”
Lyster pointed
along the hall. “She was in the third room on the left. But she may not be
there now. The Skunk was going to her.”
They started
on, to the light of a flashlight Redfern carried. A door behind them opened,
and Redfern whirled about. But it was only the woman who spoke French. In her
hand she held the bunch of keys taken from the eunuch’s belt. Holding one out, she
pointed to the third door. Redfern took the key.
Shirley stood
at the far side of the room, pressed tight against the wall. Her head was
tilted, her eyes flashed, and her little mouth was set in a thin, hard line.
Her haik had been torn from her and
lay trampled on the floor, and her hair tumbled about her eyes. At sight of
them a slight tremor passed through her. Then she laughed, a pitiful,
half-hysterical laugh, and from behind her she drew her hand and lifted it
before them. From it dangled the diamond necklace.
Chapter XXXII Number Three
“ALLAH is
good!” Shirley sighed. “I could almost be a Mohammedan, just to utter that with
fervour—if I hadn’t seen so much of their seamy side. The fifth in a Mohammedan
harem has no bed of roses.”
They were
seated in Shirley’s room at the Majestic. Lyster had paid the delayed bill with
the money orders he carried. They had not been taken from him, probably because
they were non-negotiable by a stranger. Redfern was silent. The crumpled body
of the eunuch was before his eyes, and a gnawing fury that The Skunk had
escaped.
“What did The
Skunk do?” Lyster asked. “He left me to go to you. I was trying to get to you
when the negro caught me.”
“The Skunk?”
Shirley tossed the diamond necklace in the air and caught it. “Oh, he just gave
me this. Conscience, I suppose. . . . Well, no, not quite that. We must do The
Skunk credit. He seemed anxious to find out who you and I are. Offered me this
necklace as a bribe. Thought I was an ordinary, mercenary detective, I gather.
When I grabbed it, he was quite indignant. In fact, we had something of a
tussle for it. And my fighting weight is only about one hundred and
twenty-four.
“We were at
it, hammer and tongs, when we heard the first shot. He tried to get away to see
what was happening, but I managed to hold him. I never was so anxious to keep a
man. I never had a man so anxious to get away from me. He seemed quite annoyed
with me. He even scratched!” She exhibited a red mark on her right wrist. “Oh,
well, it’s been a wonderful experience. But it’s more comfortable here.”
She waved
toward a pair of fans, one at either end of the room, their hum making the hot
air more somnolent. Summer curtains were down over the windows.
“I suppose we
must be about the last tourists left in Tunis ,”
she said. “ I wouldn’t choose it myself for comfort at this time of the year.
And when it comes to being closed in a harem, the fifth—”
“There is no
fifth,” Lyster broke in.
“That’s what
saved me. The old woman knew it. She knew she’d be kicked out if I stayed. It
accounts for her willingness to help us out. They’re a faithful lot, those
women. I rather worked on the idea. I had no idea what a vamp I could be. Their
lord and master came to see me twice. Not such a bad old fellow, either—with
the proper wife.” She leaned forward to examine herself in the mirror. “You saw
what Collioure was doing to me, Mr. Lyster. Well, this climate is worse, a
hundred times worse!” An involuntary shiver exposed the effort to laugh it all
away. “That’s all I have to tell. What about you, Mr. Redfern? How did you
happen to be on hand to rob Mr. Lyster of some of the glory?”
Redfern’s
story was simple enough. He had had no difficulty in keeping Frenchy in sight
in Barcelona , and he had taken passage to New York on the boat on
which his quarry was returning steerage. During the voyage he had managed to
pick up an acquaintance with the man he trailed, and had thus enabled himself
to adopt the disguise that deceived even Lyster. Handing over his man to the
police at New York , he had returned
immediately to Naples and taken the first boat
to Tunis .
“Lyster’s
cables had told me enough to put me on your trail. I found where you were
stopping, Miss Cringan, or had been. Lyster, of course, was easy to trace. When
I found you both missing I was at a loss for a time. The Skunk’s perfume booth
was not hard to find, and thereafter I scarcely lost sight of him.”
“But how did
you do it?” Lyster puzzled. “In that warren of streets—”
“I had the
advantage of you in that he did not know me. It wasn’t easy, but I managed to
keep it up. When the trail led nowhere for three days, I began to despair. I
was certain he was not seeing either of you, and I could not imagine he would
not visit you if he knew where you were—was concerned, I mean, with your capture
. . . unless he had done away with both of you.”
“Neither of us
saw him until to-day,” Lyster said.
“Luckily I was
on his heels to-day. When he set out into a new part of the walled city I began
to hope. That he was going somewhere was plain from the way he strode along,
also that he felt none too comfortable about it. He almost got away from me,
but I was lucky. I lost sight of him round a corner, and when I reached it he
had disappeared, but I heard his footsteps inside a court, ascending a flight of
stone steps. By that time I knew the sound of his feet.”
“What time was
that?” Lyster asked.
"It must
have been before nine. I had picked him up at his bazaar. If I hadn’t been
about earlier than usual this morning I’d have missed him. After prowling uneasily
about his place for an hour or so he closed the front and departed. That in
itself was significant, for he had always been on duty before.
“By the way he
climbed those steps I deduced that he was not going to leave in a hurry, so I
rushed back to the hotel and made myself up to resemble Frenchy. I’ve had it in
mind ever since the trip to New York .
We’re about the same build and the same shape of face. I got back only in time
to hear the row you were having with the negro. You know the rest. Thank God it
turned out as it did! You’re both well out of it. Another five minutes—”
“But,” Shirley
interjected, “we’re not out of it yet! We have still The Skunk to get. And then
there’s Baldy.”
“You’re out of it, Miss Cringan! ” Lyster
declared.
“That’s for me
to say. . . . And I’ve said. For detectives it strikes me the pair of you
are—well, a little careless. Without doubt The Skunk knows we’re here right
here in this room—talking things over. He has eyes and ears all over the city.”
Redfern shook
his head. “All The Skunk is thinking of right now is saving his hide. It was
too narrow a squeak to take further chances. He knows what the French
authorities would do if they knew what happened. There’s a boat leaving for Palermo and Naples
this evening. I figured at first he would make for the desert, but he’s been
too long in America
to stand the heat—or the isolation. The train to Algiers is too exposed. But his first thought
will be to get out of French jurisdiction. That means the Italian boat. I’ll
watch that boat—not as Frenchy, of course, but as myself. I left my bag at a
small restaurant near the wharf, so I can pick it up at a moment’s notice. Now
I’ll be moving.”
“But what are
we to do?” Shirley inquired. “Mr. Lyster and I can’t just joy-ride about the
world together. You didn’t happen to bring a chaperon with you, Mr. Redfern?”
“Stay here,”
Redfern said, “till you hear from me. If I don’t turn up I’ll cable.”
“I hoped The
Skunk would lead us eventually to Baldy,” Lyster sighed.
“Are you
forgetting that Toni said Baldy often spoke of Palermo ? If The Skunk takes the Italian boat,
the first stop is Palermo ;
and who knows? Fortunately Toni had Baldy’s real name—he thought of it before
the end—so it shouldn’t be hard to run him down if he’s there.”
He got to his
feet, squared his shoulders, stood for a moment in the breeze of the fan, and
with a bow left the room.
“He might be
going to lunch! ” Shirley said. “Help yourself to the cigarettes.”
But Lyster was
already up and making for the door. “Thanks, no.”
Shirley’s eyes
crinkled. “By the way, are you going?”
“Yes—yes.”
“Shall I call
for help—or a chaperon? Are you afraid of the fifth woman in a Mohammedan
harem?”
“I’m not fool
enough,” Lyster said stiffly, “to think you’d consider it worth while to vamp
me, Miss Cringan.” He dropped his hat and sat down. “I thought it might
be—better—”
She tossed him
a cigarette. “Put that between your lips. It might make you more reckless. Now,
what shall we talk about?”
“It was you
who had something to say, I thought.”
“So I have. I’ve
got so much to say to anyone who can speak English that I’m going to lose my
reputation for silence. Don’t forget I’ve been three weeks and more among
foreigners—or alone. By the way, you haven’t told me your own experiences. You
never do—till it’s dragged from you.”
“Mine are so
uninteresting compared with yours.” He told what had happened in the days of
his captivity, but he saw that she was not interested.
“It looks,”
she mused, “as if our little thrill is over. With Mr. Redfern to do the
trailing there’s not much left for us. . . . And I enjoyed it. I don’t mind
admitting that working with you is much more exciting than with Mr. Redfern.
He’s too—too official, too humdrum and cut-and-dried in his methods. Two and
two always make four with him, and the cure for toothache is to yank it. You’d
try a counter-irritant: it’s so much more uncertain and exciting. That’s why I
like it.”
“You like it
because it’s more dangerous!” he blurted out. “I don’t know the game well
enough to be reasonable and safe about it. See the mess we got into—and Redfern
had to come along to save us.”
“But he did
save us. That’s what I think would always happen—like what happens to the
English— you muddle along . . . to success. Now, what I’d like better than
anything is to strike out on a plan of our own to find Baldy. Leave The Skunk
to Mr. Redfern. He seems fairly efficient, in his way, on a straight case of
sleuthing. But when it comes to a really heady plan that avoids the beaten
track we make modern improvements. There’s still a man we want somewhere. My
idea is that Redfern would have done better to have let Frenchy lead us to him.
These men are bitter enemies now, for each suspects the others. Baldy is
probably in America ,
too—and he got the biggest reward of all, the canary diamond. The others will
think so now, with their own money gone.”
“But where
does all this lead?” Lyster asked.
Shirley
stretched her arms over her head. “Only to the fact that you’re my dinner-guest
to-night. Come on! I’m hungry.”
“No—I—will—not!”
Lyster stood up. “You’re coming with me to the ‘Japon.’ They've the best vol au vent you ever tasted.”
She pursed her
lips at him. “Oho! The caveman! What a lot you learned in that Arab prison!
That must have been some fight you had with the negro. I hope the ‘Japon’ is
respectable!”
Chapter XXXIII
Siena
THE peculiar,
misty brilliance of the Chianti country; the May sun softly shining over the
distant Apennines . Siena ,
city of lurid history, of ancient and modern Pallio, of one-time feudal lords
and faithful vassals, city that shook defiant fist in the lordly face of Rome at its greatest.
Country of hill villages that were once nations in themselves, of wine and
sunshine, of famous cathedrals, of priceless art, of execrable train-service.
Shirley
Cringan leaned from the window of her baronial room and sighed. Beyond a flowering
garden was the city wall, to the left rose a quaint church-tower that was part
of the wall itself, and away through the haze the mountains. It was too
beautiful to do anything but sit and look—and look again.
But there was
work to do. Sighing again, she rose. The sound of a footstep on the brick
terrace below turned her back to the window. She leaned out, took a hasty
glance, and retreated. But she must have changed her mind, for she reseated
herself on the sill.
“Oh, Mr.
Halton!”
Lyster looked
up and reddened. He had been pacing one end of the garden for some time, seeing
nothing of its beauty.
Shirley swept
her arm across the horizon. “Don't you see? Don’t you see? Isn’t it too lovely?
If you can’t see over the wall down there, come up here. Or, no, of course not.
The idea! But perhaps the gentleman in the next room will let you look from his
window.”
“I wasn’t
thinking of the view,” Lyster replied shortly, and resumed his pacing.
“Evidently
not. Will my lord’s sense of propriety permit me to suggest that I come down
there, then?”
“If I were
your lord—” he began, with a frown.
She shook a
reproving finger at him. “No, no. Lords didn’t do that! You’d have to be my
daddy—or my schoolmaster.” She disappeared.
He was seated
on a stone bench, relic of ancient times, when she emerged through the large
glass doors. His chin was in his hand, and he stared at the coloured tiling at
his feet, so that he did not see her until she stood beside him. He rose
hastily and waved her to another bench, but she seated herself on the end of
the one he had vacated. He did not sit down.
“All right,”
she said, “if you talk better standing. You haven’t been wandering about all
day without something on your mind. Give it air!”
He paced the
tiling before her, his hands clasped at his back. A heavy stone railing cut
them off from the garden six feet below. The flower-beds and the paths were
dotted with stone figures, and along the city-wall grew fruit vines, now in
full leaf.
“I’ve been
wondering,” he began, “wondering when the chase will end.”
“Are you so
tired of your companion?” she asked toying with the handle of the crocheted bag
she carried.
“I’m tired
of—of playing the bloodhound. You called it that once.”
“You never
forget the nasty things I say, do you, Mr.—Halton?”
“You give me
no chance—there are so many. . . . And when you don’t say them you act them.”
He seemed surprised at his own temerity, for he stopped and glanced at her in
some alarm. “But it isn’t that, it isn’t that—not only that. I’m fed up. I want
to get back to work.”
Shirley ran a
finger along the rounded edge of the stone. “Most people would call this
work—rather hard work.”
“Thank you.
It’s your first admission that it isn't just a holiday jaunt.”
“I’ve been
through some of it since myself,” she said. “But may I ask what is the added
attraction back home? I didn’t know you had friends—like that.”
He shook his
head irritably. “I want to get back, that’s all.”
“To the
valeting?”
“If you wish
to call it that. . . . When we get The Skunk I’m through. Someone else can take
up Baldy’s trail.”
“You’d go back
on Uncle Nathan—break your promise to finish the work?”
“I didn’t
expect it to run on like this,” he retorted uneasily.
“You mean you
didn’t expect to be bullied into working with me. I see.”
He strode to
the end of the terrace and back before answering.
“You’ve added
an unforeseen complication.”
“I thought I’d
helped a little,” she murmured.
He saw her
eyes suddenly grow wet with tears, but he turned stubbornly away. “You have
helped, but I’d rather go on another year without you than—than risk you in it
again. The danger is as great as ever—and the men we’re after are more
desperate.”
He could not
see her eyes now, for she was looking at the finger rubbing along the edge of
the seat.
“If I enjoy
it,” she said, “why should you care?”
“I do care. I
care so much—” He stopped and turned away.
“I’m the
modern girl,” she said, ignoring the pause. “The only life for me is the one
with thrills. Mad, yes, perhaps, but so very conventional to-day. I want
thrills—thrills!” She lifted both arms.
Lyster planted
himself before her and glared into her eyes. “Yes, and by God some day you’ll
get them—and you’ll wonder why you thought this thrilling!” He strode away from
her, his hands working at his back.
“Meaning?”
“Nothing you’d
understand, Miss Cringan. . . . Only some day a man is going to take hold of
you—mercilessly—and spank you. . . . And you’ll like it. Thrills? You don’t
know what a thrill is, you cold-blooded, calculating—” He broke off. “Pardon
me. My nerves are on edge.”
She sat with
tilted head, examining him through half-closed eyes.
“Odd, isn’t
it? . . . You talk so feelingly of thrills. Did you ever feel one yourself, I
wonder? I can’t imagine anything in your life that wouldn’t be routine—to you.
You don’t know how to drag the best from life. You’re fossilized, frozen. You
talk of some new kind of thrill. But what do you know of it yourself? . . . I
could imagine you sitting down on a free night and coming deliberately to the
conclusion that it would be better to—to take a wife—or to know a girl better.
And, once decided, you’d set about it like—like a robot. You laid your course
in America
like a Finance Minister budgeting the year’s expenses, and you followed that
course as if it were walled in. . . . Even the raid—the robbery. You passed
through it as coolly as if you’d planned it yourself. And when Uncle Nathan
asked you to take up the trail, you merely substituted it for your other duties
for the time being.
“You’ll never
have time for anything but ritual, ceremonial, duty. Life, work, yes, and even
love—they’ll be cold-blooded, yes, and calculated—you provided the adjectives
yourself—calculated duties. You’ll ration your kisses, you’ll probably write
out your proposal, with every comma in place. As a husband you’ll be a piece of
household furniture—or your wife will be; as a father an institution. And your
wife will either leave you the first week or keep you as she’d keep a family
heirloom. Why, you couldn’t—”
His eyes had
come nearer hers, glaring furiously, and his fists were clenched at his sides.
“And as a
lover?” he demanded fiercely.
She rose with
an indolent movement and strolled toward the door.
“I can’t
imagine it,” she drawled. “Too fantastic, much too fantastic. Thrills? Leave me
to my little ones. And the little one just now is finding that elusive villain,
The Skunk. Ah, here’s our confederate.”
Redfern had
hurried into the garden. He caught Shirley by the arm and drew her toward
Lyster.
“I’ve found
where he lives,” he whispered, wiping his forehead with the edge of one finger.
“Now we must lose no time.”
They put their
heads together.
In the early
afternoon The Skunk wandered into the streets of Siena , his big figure conspicuous in the
crowd. The way cleared before him as he went, and he smiled proudly.
He had led his
pursuers a long and arduous chase since leaving Tunis . So fast had he travelled, so well had
he covered his trail, that he had days before dismissed any idea of being
followed. But Redfern had picked up the scattered clues, patient and untiring.
Shirley
Cringan and Lyster had awaited in Tunis
the cable Redfern promised. The heat had become almost unbearable, and they
were in constant dread that the dead eunuch might be traced to them. Redfern
they had not seen again, so that it seemed certain he had taken passage on the
Italian boat.
The cable,
from Palermo ,
merely asked them to follow, and to inquire at the American Express Office
there. At Palermo Lyster was handed a short note. The Skunk had gone on to Rome by train. At Rome the American Express had another note for them that
sent them forward to Siena .
There Shirley
had made inquiries for Redfern, Lyster remaining under cover. The detective
reported dismally that the trail seemed to have broken off; he could learn
nothing of The Skunk. When Shirley told the plan she and Lyster had formed he
shook his head. He had fallen in with their idea of dogging the heels of the
robbers until they landed in America ,
as he felt certain they would sooner or later, but his two companions had grown
impatient.
The Skunk
strolled along the street and came at last before an outdoor café largely
frequented by visitors. He paused for a moment to run his eye over the crowd
seated in the shade of the over-hanging upper story, an instinct of his kind.
Satisfied, he picked his way through the tables to an empty one in the darkest
corner. His order was for the same as his nearest neighbour, a black fluid he
did not recognize.
The glass had
just been placed before him when Shirley Cringan sauntered through between the
tables, looking for an empty chair. She spied what she wanted at The Skunk’s
table and made for it. The Syrian was unaware of her until she was only two
steps away. When he saw her he started to his feet, his face white and his eyes
wide with surprise and alarm.
Shirley’s
eyebrows lifted.
“Ah, my Tunis friend!” She
seated herself across the table. “How interesting! We can talk of old times,
can’t we? I’ve wanted so much to see you since that little affair. . . . Did
you know the police, too, were anxious about you? I believe there’s even a
reward. It would be easy money—Why, what’s the hurry? The police of Italy and France ,
of anywhere in Europe , will have your
description by this time, so I wouldn’t do anything conspicuous if I were you.”
The Skunk,
with a heavy scowl, more of fear than of anger, stumbled away and disappeared.
Redfern detached himself from a doorway across the street and followed. A few
moments later Lyster occupied the seat The Skunk had vacated.
“He’s on the
hoof again,” Shirley said, with a laugh. “Itchy feet. Poor Skunk! Yes,” to the
waiter, “I’ll take the same, and make it two.”
They met that
night at Shirley’s hotel.
“He bought a
ticket for Genoa ,”
Redfern reported. “That means America .
A boat leaves in three days for New
York . I can take the next train and pick him up. Wait
here till you get definite word from me. If he takes that boat, you can take
the next one.”
“But what
about Baldy?” Shirley asked. “ ‘We— want—Baldy!’ as the collegians chant.”
Redfern
considered. “I’m convinced that the only way to pick up Baldy’s trail is from America .
I’ve about come to the conclusion that your way is the best—to leave these men
free to lead us to the others. We take a long chance with a clever rogue like
The Skunk, but it seems the only way. I never thought I’d weary so quickly of
travel. But I'm a married man; it doesn’t seem right to jaunt about the world’s
resorts without wife and family.”
Shirley lifted
her eyes to the ceiling. “Please don’t get personal!” she said.
Chapter XXXIV The Canary Diamond
THREE weeks
later they landed in New York .
To Lyster the voyage was a nightmare, not because the boat was not all that
could be desired or that the sea was uneasy. But a coolness had sprung up
between him and Shirley Cringan, and the girl seemed not to wish to have him
around. His misery was none the less acute when he saw her dancing every night
with gay companions whom she did not introduce to him. He had arranged their
deck-chairs together, but Shirley seldom occupied hers, so that he was left to
fret alone.
They were
seated together on the last day of the voyage. Shirley was unusually gay.
“You’re glad
it’s over!” Lyster grumbled.
“I’m glad for
your sake, at any rate,” she returned. “You’ve wished it ever since Banyuls.
Besides, you were fed up—you wanted to get back to work. That’s why I can’t
fathom this moroseness. Perhaps,” leaning toward him anxiously, “you need
yeast—or is it aspirin? Perhaps you don’t use the proper toothpaste twice a day
and see your dentist twice a year. There are so many possible reforms in your
case.”
“Rattle on,”
he scowled. “Get it off your chest! You’ve been bubbling with drivel like that
since we left Genoa .”
She held up
her hands in dismay. “And you came from Oxford !
My, oh my! I must tell Uncle Nathan!”
“To hell with
Uncle Nathan!” he exploded, and stamped away.
She overtook
him at the turn of the deck. “Why,” she whispered, “you’re getting almost
human! At any rate, you and I have seen something of the world together.”
He turned to
her a face red with anger. “Stop it! For God’s sake stop it!”
“Dear me!” She
fell into step beside him. “It sort of puts me in my place, doesn’t it? Yes, I
know, and no one better, the unladylike part I’ve played from the beginning.
But,” slyly, “it’s been part of the fun . . . I’ve even enjoyed browbeating
you.”
Suddenly she
clutched his arm and drew him to a stop. He saw her eyes blazing. “Do you
know,” she hissed, “sometimes I could—I could bite you! But I know I’d get
hydrophobia.” Her face crinkled. “My best chance would be when you’re spanking
me. Well, good bye. Daddy and mumsie will be there to meet me, I suppose.
You’ll be too busy to look after me.”
Clifford and
Queenie Cringan had returned from Collioure two weeks before and had remained
in New York .
Lyster had only a few minutes with them: he was in a hurry to get home, as he
explained—while Shirley stood silently by, a slight smile twisting her lips.
Word was received that Redfern and The Skunk had arrived, and the detective had
kept on the trail.
Next day
Hornbaker and his wife welcomed Lyster. The former stared, then laughed
explosively.
“Great Scott,
Lyster, it’s quite distinguished. With a beard like that I can’t hope to hold
you to your old job.”
“I was
thinking of that myself,” Lyster said, his lips in a hard line.
Husband and wife
regarded him inquiringly.
“A disguise, I
suppose,” Julia said. “But now that you’re back you can dispose of it. The
police will attend to everything now.”
“The job is
not yet complete, Mrs. Hornbaker.”
“You’ve had a
stirring time, at any rate,” Hornbaker said. “And I’m willing to bet that niece
of mine provided some of the excitement.”
“She was a
real assistance at times, invaluable indeed. I don’t know that might have
happened without her.”
“Humph! I’ve
heard from Redfern some of the things that happened with her. . . . And did you
ever stop to consider what might have happened to her, young man?”
Lyster lifted
helpless hands. “My thinking of it did no good. Miss Cringan took the bit in
her teeth and ran away with us. She merely informed us now and then what she
planned to do. Any danger there was presented itself to her only as another
incentive to get into the thick of it. I’m sorry we haven’t the whole affair
cleaned up.”
“We’ll get
Baldy yet,” Hornbaker declared confidently. “Redfern tells me The Skunk seems
to have given up the perfume business over here. It looks as if he had
something more serious in mind. Which means that he’s up to some devilment.”
“If you’ll
permit, sir, I’ll stick to the job till we get Baldy. I’d like to be in at the
death. But I’d like more help. I want to get this business out of the way.”
Hornbaker
frowned. “Out of the way? What’s crowding you, Lyster?”
“I was hoping
to get free—right away.”
“A holiday?
Well, you deserve it. Take a month—two, if you like—”
“I was going
to quit, sir. I want to resign.”
Nathan and
Julia stared at him as if they could not believe their ears.
“Resign? You
mean—leave me? Julia, Julia, did you ever hear the like?”
Julia nodded:
she was the calmest of the three.
“I’m not
surprised.”
A look passed
between husband and wife. Hornbaker chuckled.
“All right.
But you’re still my man till we run Baldy down. There’s time then to discuss
the future.”
The next two
weeks was a time of inactivity, during which Lyster fretted and fumed. Three
detectives were working on The Skunk in relays, and they never lost track of
him. For a few days the Syrian was plainly uneasy, keeping himself to
unfrequented places and appearing little abroad. Events at Tunis
and Siena had
undermined his confidence. But a week of apparent freedom in the United States
revived his courage, and he began to move about without selfconsciousness.
It made the
work of the detectives simpler. Redfern had settled down grimly to the chase,
with the patience of his kind. Frenchy was still in jail, unable to provide
bail, his case postponed from week to week at Hornbaker’s assurance that
evidence was being collected.
At the end of
the fortnight Redfern walked into Lyster’s office and announced without
excitement that Baldy was found.
“You’ve
arrested him?”
“No.” The
detective stormed to the window and back, now really excited. “No, we haven’t
arrested him, because The Skunk has eluded us. Damn it, this thing promises to
run on to eternity! We let one go to lead us to another, and then we lose the
first. My plan was the best from the first, I see that now.”
Lyster was
appalled. The announcement of Baldy’s discovery had raised a hope in his mind,
not unmixed with misgiving, for to break with his employer was, as he thought
of it, no pleasant prospect. And now it looked as if the whole chase must be
resumed, for The Skunk must have suspected, and they could not hope to have
such good fortune again in finding him.
Redfern saw
his disappointment. “We’ve done the best we could. We’ve pretty nearly eaten
and slept with him, yet I don’t think he was aware of it. What it looks like to
me is that he had some big job on hand and is in hiding till he’s ready to act.
It’s the way of criminals. His money must be running out, and that means
another job. Until it’s pulled off he can’t lead us to Europe
again, and he’ll find it difficult now to leave the country, even if he wished.
Whatever happens he must look on America as the safest place to
hide.”
Lyster asked
what was to be done with Baldy.
“That’s up to
Mr. Hornbaker.”
“But we can’t
sit still!” Lyster protested, rising and plunging about the room. “We must do
something about Baldy, even if, for the time being, we have lost The Skunk.”
“Perhaps you
have another plan?” Redfern asked dryly.
Lyster faced
him. “You know where Baldy is! Can you take me to him?”
“Certainly.
But what for? What good would it do? Are you thinking you can coax him to tell
where The Skunk is—even if he knew? They haven’t met once since The Skunk
returned. I imagine he’s the last one Baldy would wish to meet.”
“But you’re
keeping him under surveillance?”
“Of course. I
have a room across a back-yard from Baldy’s, and one of us is always there,
while another keeps watch on the street. The two of us on duty can signal to
each other through a lane running back from the street beside the house where
Baldy has his room. It’s in Peter
Street .”
“I must go to
that room,” Lyster said.
That evening
three men sat in a small, dirty, unfurnished room overlooking a littered
back-yard between two dingy buildings facing on parallel streets. The room was
in darkness. Across in the other building several rooms were lighted, but the
eyes of the three were fixed on a solitary window. One of the three held in his
hand a small flashlight with which he twice sent a signal down a lane across
the back-yard.
In the room
they watched a man came into view. He was pale and thin, his face haggard and
lined. Seating himself at a table, he commenced to eat from a loaf of bread,
wolfing it, varying the meal with huge bites from a piece of cheese.
“The man’s
hungry, starving!” Hornbaker, one of the three, whispered.
Redfern said:
“Baldy is worse than starving, he’s been ill.”
The man they
watched thrust the remains of the bread and cheese to the back of the table,
wiped the oilcloth with a towel, and going to a chipped enamel basin, poured
water into it and carefully washed his hands.
“Humph! ”
Lyster murmured. “That’s strange. After
eating!”
They continued
to watch as Baldy seated himself once more at the table and drew from his
pocket a small package. At that point his hands moved forward out of sight of
the watchers.
“What does it
mean?” Hornbaker asked.
“He’s done
that twenty times a day,” Redfern puzzled. “We can’t make it out. It’s about
all he does do, besides nibble a light meal now and then. The fellow’s starving
to death. He seldom goes out, and only to buy bread and cheese, and the pennies
he counts laboriously again and again. He isn’t up to his old tricks for making
a living, that’s sure.”
Lyster was
curious. “If we could find a room farther along there we might see what it is.”
“That’s
right.” Redfern was on his feet. “We chose this one because it gives a view of
more of the room. I’ll see the janitor and get a key. Most of the rooms in this
building are empty.”
He hurried
away. Hornbaker sighed.
“These
unimaginative detectives!”
Baldy remained
where he was, his hands outstretched before him, still as a statue. Redfern
returned with a key and called to them. They followed him along the dark hall.
As they neared the next door someone hurried from it and made off in the
darkness toward the stairs. Redfern looked after him.
“That’s funny.
This room is supposed to be empty; at least, the janitor said so. Perhaps it
isn’t the right room. We’ll know in a moment.”
He inserted
the key to the light of the flashlight. But the door was not locked. Hornbaker
and Lyster hurried in, leaving Redfern frowning toward the stairs.
“I don’t like
it,” he growled as he joined the other two at the window. “Who could it
be?—though I’ve no right to stop him and ask.”
But neither
Hornbaker nor Lyster heard. They were staring at Baldy. The man’s hands were
cupped before him, and a strange, fascinated, half-hypnotized look made his
coarse face almost gentle. In his hands was a ball of cotton-wool, and as he
moved them a flash of light like a physical prick shot across the ugly
back-yards to the three men in the darkened room.
“The canary
diamond!”
Lyster was on
his feet instantly.
Suddenly they
saw Baldy’s head jerk round toward the door of his room. Then, hastily folding
the diamond in its wool, he wrapped about it several layers of tissue paper and
thrust it in his pocket. His hands trembled. One wild look he threw about the
room before creeping to the door, where he stood for a time listening. Slowly
he turned the key.
The door flew
open and The Skunk rushed in!
Chapter XXXV Number Four
REDFERN and
Lyster made for the hall. Hornbaker, less active, followed, but in the race to
the street he was left behind. Picking up a policeman and the other detective,
the two younger men climbed the stairs to Baldy’s room.
As they went
they could hear loud, angry voices from above. The Skunk had slammed the door
behind him so hard that it failed to catch, and it now stood open an inch,
leaving a narrow crack of light to percolate into the outer hall. But the two
men in the room were too excited, too concerned with their own affairs to
notice; nor did they hear the soft approach of the four outside.
Redfern, first
to reach the door, lifted his hand for silence.
In the centre
of the room stood The Skunk, an automatic in his hand. Cowering against the
wall, Baldy faced him; but there was defiance, too, in his eyes.
“You come
across, you double-crosser!” The Skunk snarled. “Where’s that diamond?”
“What—diamond?”
Baldy quavered.
“Don’t try
that on me, damn you! I saw it in your hand not three minutes ago. I’m going to
get my share, or I’ll drill you like the dog you are!”
“But—but you
got your share,” Baldy protested, “more’n your share! You got the diamond
necklace and—”
The Skunk’s teeth
grated together. “I lost that—and nearly lost my head with it. I got to have
money!”
“But you got
money, you and Toni; you got all there was. And then when I shot Toni you and
Dago George got his money too. I saw you take it off him. I never got a cent,
and you know it.”
Hornbaker had
come up, and Lyster moved to let him see.
“That ain’t my
fault,” The Skunk jeered. “You took the diamond! It’s worth more than all the
rest put together, that sparkler is. When you croaked Toni we should have
shared everything—sold that sparkler and divvied. If you didn’t get your share
it’s your own fault. But I guess you got it bumping Toni off. What the hell did
you do that for, if you weren’t after your share?”
“You wouldn’t
understand why,” Baldy sighed.
“Maybe. But I
understand, and so do you, I’m getting in on that diamond! They’ve been
hounding me all over Europe , the dicks have,
and now I’ve thrown them off I got to lie low, and I can’t without the jack.
Here,” as Baldy began to move along the wall, “ stand where you are or I won’t
wait! I’ll plug you and take the whole damned thing! By God, that’s what I’ll
do anyway!”
He took steady
aim.
But Redfern
was too quick for him. He fired through the crack of the door, and The Skunk’s
gun clattered to the floor. With an oath he whirled about, reaching to a pocket
with his left hand. They were on him then, and in a moment the handcuffs were
on his wrists and the extra gun taken from his pocket.
The policeman
approached Baldy in a business-like way. “Here, you, hold out your hands for
the bracelets! This is going to make some fine reading for the papers
to-morrow. The Hornbaker hold-up gang cleaned up! Well, it’s been a long chase,
they tell me, but all’s well that ends well. Come along, you!”
But Nathan
Hornbaker stepped between them and, reaching out, caught Baldy as he swayed.
Gently he eased him to the bed.
“No, you
aren’t arresting this man, officer. He was working for me—a decoy. It was the
only way we could get The Skunk. And that isn’t the canary diamond, but only an
imitation I had made for the purpose. I knew it would draw the gang. You’ve got
the last of them there.” He pointed to The Skunk, who, foaming at the mouth,
was led away by the triumphant policeman and the second detective. Only Redfern
and Lyster remained.
Baldy,
trembling weakly, dropped to the edge of the bed, his face working, staring
incredulously up at Hornbaker. The latter laid a gentle hand on his shoulder.
“Never mind,
Baldy! I had to lie to save you. You’re different from the others.” He held out
his hand. “Sorry, but it’s mine, you know. There are so many things you need
more badly than that diamond. The first is a good meal. Come out and eat it
with me! You may have been a crook, but you were never a brute. I know why you
shot Toni Boitani. You’re too decent at heart to hand over to the police. I’ll
see you won’t need to fear them again.”
The lump in
Baldy’s throat moved up and down. With shaking hand he drew the parcel from his
pocket, opened it, looked with moist eyes for a long time at the diamond, and
handed it over.
“I knew I’d
never be able to keep it,” he whispered. “But don’t ever let me see it again. I
think I’d commit any crime to get my hands on it again. . . . I’ve never been
so happy—or so miserable.”
“You were
never a brute, Baldy, but why did you let them leave us to die in the vault?”
For answer
Baldy rolled up his sleeve and pointed to an ugly wound that was not yet quite
healed.
“Toni got me
there. I lost a lot of blood. I was in bed for a week, out of my head a little,
I think.”
As they went
down the stairs Hornbaker sighed. “The chapter ends. I said I’d get them and I
did. . . . Rather, you did, Lyster. You’ll come back to the house to-night—and
shave?”
But Lyster
shook his head. “No, I’m not coming back! I must get out for myself. I can’t—”
His employer
patted him on the shoulder. “All right, all right! But you’ll drop in at the
office to-morrow, won’t you, and bid me good-bye?”
Chapter XXXVI The Cave-Man
ROLAND LYSTER
drove up to the door of the Cringan apartments and, leaping from the car,
entered the lobby and pressed the button beneath the name “Clifford Cringan.”
Shirley spoke through the tube.
“I’ve called
for you,” Lyster announced.
“Oho! So your
new job is with the police, is it, Mr. Lyster?”
“The police be
darned! This is more peremptory.”
Silence for a
moment. “Cave-man stuff, eh?"
“Whatever you
prefer.”
“Well. . . . I
think I’ll come down to see what you look like playing the part. I’ll take a
chance.”
Lyster stood
beside the car and watched her descend the steps. She came slowly, and her eyes
were fixed on him inquiringly as she fumbled with her gloves. At the foot of
the steps she stopped and lifted her hands in amazement.
“My, oh, my!
You looked far more the cave-man when you had that swamp on your face and forgot
to trim it. I recalled a scene in a Tunis
palace—Why, you’re looking quite—civilized!”
He caught her
arm and almost dragged her to the car. She bounced on the seat.
“And a nice
new, expensive Studebaker! Has uncle gone in for a new stable of cars?”
“The car is
mine. Now, draw in your skirt; I want to close this door.”
He walked
around the car and climbed in. With a surge they shot forward. Shirley pursed
her lips as she looked at the speedometer.
“Perhaps a new
car is too much of a novelty for you to know that it shouldn’t go faster than
thirty miles an hour for the first five hundred. Pardon me for reminding you,
but budgets are the dickens in these days of depression—and you’ll wish to turn
this car in next year. . . . I suppose it’s uncle’s reward for a good boy.”
He pressed the
accelerator. “Another word from you, Shirley Cringan,” he warned, “and I’m apt
to damn your uncle! And I don’t wish to. I—bought—this car—myself—with my
own—money! I’ll buy you one, too, if you wish. I’m no longer your uncle’s
valet!”
She rolled her
eyes sideways toward him, and a troubled look wrinkled her face. Neither spoke
for some time. The car gathered speed. Shirley sighed.
“I hoped you’d
help me arrange that budget—Roland. A woman can’t do it all alone.”
His foot slipped
from the accelerator so abruptly that Shirley was jerked forward. He caught her
in his arms and held her.
“Because,” she
murmured into his neck, “we’ve just got to be married. It wouldn’t be decent
not to, you know, after travelling all over the world together! One might say
we almost lived together in that palace. At least, that’s what my friends will
say. And I haven’t even a husband to divorce. Besides,” easing away from him,
“there’s probably a friend or two in those cars honking behind us to get out of
their way. It almost sounds like a wedding send-off. So please be considerate
to our new car, our reputations, and our budget."
Lyster snapped
his fingers. “Bah for the budget! I could buy a car every month and have enough
left for any budget. Bah for our friends! You see, I’m the Co.
in the firm of Nathan Hornbaker and Co.”
Shirley
gurgled. “I knew it was coming—but I had to be brutal to you to make you drive
him to think of it. You see, I didn’t want to wait too long—my hero!
No comments:
Post a Comment